Beverly of Graustark by George Barr McCutcheon
I. EAST OF THE
CHAPTER III. ON
THE ROAD FROM
CHAPTER IV. THE
CHAPTER IV. THE
CHAPTER V. THE
INN OF THE HAWK
CHAPTER VI. THE
HOME OF THE LION
SOME FACTS AND
CHAPTER IX. THE
CHAPTER XI. THE
ROYAL COACH OF
CHAPTER XII. IN
CHAPTER XIV. A
VISIT AND ITS
CHAPTER XV. THE
CHAPTER XVI. ON
THE WAY TO ST.
CHAPTER XVII. A
CHAPTER XIX. THE
GOSSIP OF SOME
CHAPTER XXI. THE
CHAPTER XXII. A
CHAPTER XXIII. A
SHOT IN THE
CHAPTER XXV. THE
VALOR OF THE
THE PRINCE OF
A BOY DISAPPEARS
THE CAPTURE OF
CHAPTER XXX. IN
CHAPTER I. EAST OF THE SETTING SUN
Far off in the mountain lands, somewhere to the east of the setting
sun, lies the principality of Graustark, serene relic of rare old
feudal days. The traveler reaches the little domain after an arduous,
sometimes perilous journey from the great European capitals, whether
they be north or south or west—never east. He crosses great rivers and
wide plains; he winds through fertile valleys and over barren plateaus;
he twists and turns and climbs among sombre gorges and rugged
mountains; he touches the cold clouds in one day and the placid warmth
of the valley in the next. One does not go to Graustark for a pleasure
jaunt. It is too far from the rest of the world and the ways are often
dangerous because of the strife among the tribes of the intervening
mountains. If one hungers for excitement and peril he finds it in the
journey from the north or the south into the land of the Graustarkians.
From Vienna and other places almost directly west the way is not so
full of thrills, for the railroad skirts the darkest of the
Once in the heart of Graustark, however, the traveler is charmed
into dreams of peace and happiness and—paradise. The peasants and the
poets sing in one voice and accord, their psalm being of never-ending
love. Down in the lowlands and up in the hills, the simple worker of
the soil rejoices that he lives in Graustark; in the towns and villages
the humble merchant and his thrifty customer unite to sing the song of
peace and contentment; in the palaces of the noble the same patriotism
warms its heart with thoughts of Graustark, the ancient. Prince and
pauper strike hands for the love of the land, while outside the great,
heartless world goes rumbling on without a thought of the rare little
principality among the eastern mountains.
In point of area, Graustark is but a mite in the great galaxy of
nations. Glancing over the map of the world, one is almost sure to miss
the infinitesimal patch of green that marks its location. One could not
be blamed if he regarded the spot as a typographical or topographical
illusion. Yet the people of this quaint little land hold in their
hearts a love and a confidence that is not surpassed by any of the
lordly monarchs who measure their patriotism by miles and millions. The
Graustarkians are a sturdy, courageous race. From the faraway century
when they fought themselves clear of the Tartar yoke, to this very
hour, they have been warriors of might and valor. The boundaries of
their tiny domain were kept inviolate for hundreds of years, and but
one victorious foe had come down to lay siege to Edelweiss, the
capital. Axphain, a powerful principality in the north, had conquered
Graustark in the latter part of the nineteenth century, but only after
a bitter war in which starvation and famine proved far more destructive
than the arms of the victors. The treaty of peace and the indemnity
that fell to the lot of vanquished Graustark have been discoursed upon
at length in at least one history.
Those who have followed that history must know, of course, that the
reigning princess, Yetive, was married to a young American at the very
tag-end of the nineteenth century. This admirable couple met in quite
romantic fashion while the young sovereign was traveling incognito
through the United States of America. The American, a splendid fellow
named Lorry, was so persistent in the subsequent attack upon her heart,
that all ancestral prejudices were swept away and she became his bride
with the full consent of her entranced subjects. The manner in which he
wooed and won this young and adorable ruler forms a very attractive
chapter in romance, although unmentioned in history. This being the
tale of another day, it is not timely to dwell upon the interesting
events which led up to the marriage of the Princess Yetive to Grenfall
Lorry. Suffice it to say that Lorry won his bride against all wishes
and odds and at the same time won an endless love and esteem from the
people of the little kingdom among the eastern hills Two years have
passed since that notable wedding in Edelweiss.
Lorry and his wife, the princess, made their home in Washington, but
spent a few months of each year in Edelweiss. During the periods spent
in Washington and in travel, her affairs in Graustark were in the hands
of a capable, austere old diplomat—her uncle, Count Caspar Halfont.
Princess Volga reigned as regent over the principality of Axphain. To
the south lay the principality of Dawsbergen, ruled by young Prince
Dantan, whose half brother, the deposed Prince Gabriel, had been for
two years a prisoner in Graustark, the convicted assassin of Prince
Lorenz, of Axphain, one time suitor for the hand of Yetive.
It was after the second visit of the Lorrys to Edelweiss that a
serious turn of affairs presented itself. Gabriel had succeeded in
escaping from his dungeon. His friends in Dawsbergen stirred up a
revolution and Dantan was driven from the throne at Serros. On the
arrival of Gabriel at the capital, the army of Dawsbergen espoused the
cause of the Prince it had spurned and, three days after his escape, he
was on his throne, defying Yetive and offering a price for the head of
the unfortunate Dantan, now a fugitive in the hills along the Graustark
CHAPTER II. BEVERLY CALHOUN
Major George Calhoun was a member of Congress from one of the
southern states. His forefathers had represented the same commonwealth,
and so, it was likely, would his descendants, if there is virtue in the
fitness of things and the heredity of love. While intrepid frontiersmen
were opening the trails through the fertile wilds west of the
Alleghanies, a strong branch of the Calhoun family followed close in
their footsteps. The major's great-grandfather saw the glories and the
possibilities of the new territory. He struck boldly westward from the
old revolutionary grounds, abandoning the luxuries and traditions of
the Carolinas for a fresh, wild life of promise. His sons and daughters
became solid stones in the foundation of a commonwealth, and his
grandchildren are still at work on the structure. State and national
legislatures had known the Calhouns from the beginning. Battlefields
had tested their valor, and drawing-rooms had proved their gentility.
Major Calhoun had fought with Stonewall Jackson and won his
spurs—and at the same time the heart and hand of Betty Haswell, the
staunchest Confederate who ever made flags, bandages and prayers for
the boys in gray. When the reconstruction came he went to Congress and
later on became prominent in the United States consular service, for
years holding an important European post. Congress claimed him once
more in the early '90s, and there he is at this very time.
Everybody in Washington's social and diplomatic circles admired the
beautiful Beverly Calhoun. According to his own loving term of
identification, she was the major's “youngest.” The fair southerner had
seen two seasons in the nation's capital. Cupid, standing directly in
front of her, had shot his darts ruthlessly and resistlessly into the
passing hosts, and masculine Washington looked humbly to her for the
balm that might soothe its pains. The wily god of love was fair enough
to protect the girl whom he forced to be his unwilling, perhaps
unconscious, ally. He held his impenetrable shield between her heart
and the assaults of a whole army of suitors, high and low, great and
small. It was not idle rumor that said she had declined a coronet or
two, that the millions of more than one American Midas had been offered
to her, and that she had dealt gently but firmly with a score of hearts
which had nothing but love, ambition and poverty to support them in the
The Calhouns lived in a handsome home not far from the residence of
Mr. and Mrs. Grenfall Lorry. It seemed but natural that the two
beautiful young women should become constant and loyal friends. Women
as lovely as they have no reason to be jealous. It is only the woman
who does not feel secure of her personal charms that cultivates envy.
At the home of Graustark's princess Beverly met the dukes and barons
from the far east; it was in the warmth of the Calhoun hospitality that
Yetive formed her dearest love for the American people.
Miss Beverly was neither tall nor short. She was of that divine and
indefinite height known as medium; slender but perfectly molded; strong
but graceful, an absolutely healthy young person whose beauty knew well
how to take care of itself. Being quite heart-whole and fancy-free, she
slept well, ate well, and enjoyed every minute of life. In her blood
ran the warm, eager impulses of the south; hereditary love of case and
luxury displayed itself in every emotion; the perfectly normal demand
upon men's admiration was as characteristic in her as it is in any
daughter of the land whose women are born to expect chivalry and
A couple of years in a New York “finishing school” for young ladies
had served greatly to modify Miss Calhoun's colloquial charms. Many of
her delightful “way down south” phrases and mannerisms were blighted by
the cold, unromantic atmosphere of a seminary conducted by two ladies
from Boston who were too old to marry, too penurious to love and too
prim to think that other women might care to do both. There were times,
however,—if she were excited or enthusiastic,—when pretty Beverly so
far forgot her training as to break forth with a very attractive “yo'
all,” “suah 'nough,” or “go 'long naow.” And when the bands played
“Dixie” she was not afraid to stand up and wave her handkerchief. The
northerner who happened to be with her on such occasions usually found
himself doing likewise before he could escape the infection.
Miss Calhoun's face was one that painters coveted deep down in their
artistic souls. It never knew a dull instant; there was expression in
every lineament, in every look; life, genuine life, dwelt in the mobile
countenance that turned the head of every man and woman who looked upon
it. Her hair was dark-brown and abundant; her eyes were a deep gray and
looked eagerly from between long lashes of black; her lips were red and
ever willing to smile or turn plaintive as occasion required; her brow
was broad and fair, and her frown was as dangerous as a smile. As to
her age, if the major admitted, somewhat indiscreetly, that all his
children were old enough to vote, her mother, with the reluctance born
in women, confessed that she was past twenty, so a year or two either
way will determine Miss Beverly's age, so far as the telling of this
story is concerned. Her eldest brother—Keith Calhoun (the one with the
congressional heritage)—thought she was too young to marry, while her
second brother, Dan, held that she soon would be too old to attract men
with matrimonial intentions. Lucy, the only sister, having been happily
wedded for ten years, advised her not to think of marriage until she
was old enough to know her own mind.
Toward the close of one of the most brilliant seasons the Capital
had ever known, less than a fortnight before Congress was to adjourn,
the wife of Grenfall Lorry received the news which spread gloomy
disappointment over the entire social realm. A dozen receptions, teas
and balls were destined to lose their richest attraction, and hostesses
were in despair. The princess had been called to Graustark.
Beverly Calhoun was miserably unhappy. She had heard the story of
Gabriel's escape and the consequent probability of a conflict with
Axphain. It did not require a great stretch of imagination to convince
her that the Lorrys were hurrying off to scenes of intrigue, strife and
bloodshed, and that not only Graustark but its princess was in
Miss Calhoun's most cherished hopes faded with the announcement that
trouble, not pleasure, called Yetive to Edelweiss. It had been their
plan that Beverly should spend the delightful summer months in
Graustark, a guest at the royal palace. The original arrangements of
the Lorrys were hopelessly disturbed by the late news from Count
Halfont. They were obliged to leave Washington two months earlier than
they intended, and they could not take Beverly Calhoun into
danger-ridden Graustark. The contemplated visit to St. Petersburg and
other pleasures had to be abandoned, and they were in tears.
Yetive's maids were packing the trunks, and Lorry's servants were in
a wild state of haste preparing for the departure on Saturday's ship.
On Friday afternoon, Beverly was naturally where she could do the most
good and be of the least help—at the Lorrys'. Self-confessedly, she
delayed the preparations. Respectful maidservants and respectful
menservants came often to the princess's boudoir to ask questions, and
Beverly just as frequently made tearful resolutions to leave the
household in peace—if such a hullaballoo could be called peace.
Callers came by the dozen, but Yetive would see no one. Letters,
telegrams and telephone calls almost swamped her secretary; the footman
and the butler fairly gasped under the strain of excitement. Through it
all the two friends sat despondent and alone in the drear room that
once had been the abode of pure delight. Grenfall Lorry was off in town
closing up all matters of business that could be despatched at once.
The princess and her industrious retinue were to take the evening
express for New York and the next day would find them at sea.
“I know I shall cry all summer,” vowed Miss Calhoun, with conviction
in her eyes. “It's just too awful for anything.” She was lying back
among the cushions of the divan and her hat was the picture of cruel
neglect. For three solid hours she had stubbornly withstood Yetive's
appeals to remove her hat, insisting that she could not trust herself
to stay more than a minute or two.” It seems to me, Yetive, that your
jailers must be very incompetent or they wouldn't have let loose all
this trouble upon you,” she complained.
“Prince Gabriel is the very essence of trouble,” confessed Yetive,
plaintively.” He was born to annoy people, just like the evil prince in
the fairy tales.”
“I wish we had him over here,” the American girl answered stoutly.
“He wouldn't be such a trouble I'm sure. We don't let small troubles
worry us very long, you know.”
“But he's dreadfully important over there, Beverly; that's the
difficult part of it,” said Yetive, solemnly.” You see, he is a
“Then, you ought to hang him or electrocute him or whatever it is
that you do to murderers over there,” promptly spoke Beverly.
“But, dear, you don't understand. He won't permit us either to hang
or to electrocute him, my dear. The situation is precisely the reverse,
if he is correctly quoted by my uncle. When Uncle Caspar sent an envoy
to inform Dawsbergen respectfully that Graustark would hold it
personally responsible if Gabriel were not surrendered, Gabriel himself
replied: 'Graustark be hanged!'“
“How rude of him, especially when your uncle was so courteous about
it. He must be a very disagreeable person,” announced Miss Calhoun.
“I am sure you wouldn't like him,” said the princess. “His brother,
who has been driven from the throne—and from the capital, in fact—is
quite different. I have not seen him, but my ministers regard him as a
splendid young man.”
“Oh, how I hope he may go back with his army and annihilate that old
Gabriel!” cried Beverly, frowning fiercely.
“Alas,” sighed the princess, “he hasn't an army, and besides he is
finding it extremely difficult to keep from being annihilated himself.
The army has gone over to Prince Gabriel.”
“Pooh!” scoffed Miss Calhoun, who was thinking of the enormous
armies the United States can produce at a day's notice. “What good is a
ridiculous little army like his, anyway? A battalion from Fort Thomas
could beat it to—”
“Don't boast, dear,” interrupted Yetive, with a wan smile.
“Dawsbergen has a standing army of ten thousand excellent soldiers.
With the war reserves she has twice the available force I can produce.”
“But your men are so brave,” cried Beverly, who had heard their
“True, God bless them; but you forget that we must attack Gabriel in
his own territory. To recapture him means a perilous expedition into
the mountains of Dawsbergen, and I am sorely afraid. Oh, dear, I hope
he'll surrender peaceably!”
“And go back to jail for life?” cried Miss Calhoun. “It's a good
deal to expect of him, dear. I fancy it's much better fun kicking up a
rumpus on the outside than it is kicking one's toes off against an
obdurate stone wall from the inside. You can't blame him for fighting a
“No—I suppose not,” agreed the princess, miserably. “Gren is
actually happy over the miserable affair, Beverly. He is full of
enthusiasm and positively aching to be in Graustark—right in the thick
of it all. To hear him talk, one would think that Prince Gabriel has no
show at all. He kept me up till four o'clock this morning telling me
that Dawsbergen didn't know what kind of a snag it was going up
against. I have a vague idea what he means by that; his manner did not
leave much room for doubt. He also said that we would jolt Dawsbergen
off the map. It sounds encouraging, at least, doesn't it?”
“It sounds very funny for you to say those things,” admitted
Beverly, “even though they come secondhand. You were not cut out for
“Why, I'm sure they are all good English words,” remonstrated
Yetive. “Oh, dear, I wonder what they are doing in Graustark this very
instant. Are they fighting or—”
“No; they are merely talking. Don't you know, dear, that there is
never a fight until both sides have talked themselves out of breath? We
shall have six months of talk and a week or two of fight, just as they
always do nowadays.”
“Oh, you Americans have such a comfortable way of looking at
things,” cried the princess. “Don't you ever see the serious side of
“My dear, the American always lets the other fellow see the serious
side of life,” said Beverly.
“You wouldn't be so optimistic if a country much bigger and more
powerful than America happened to be the other fellow.”
“It did sound frightfully boastful, didn't it? It's the way we've
been brought up, I reckon,—even we southerners who know what it is to
be whipped. The idea of a girl like me talking about war and trouble
and all that! It's absurd, isn't it?”
“Nevertheless, I wish I could see things through those dear gray
eyes of yours. Oh, how I'd like to have you with me through all the
months that are to come. You would be such a help to me—such a joy.
Nothing would seem so hard if you were there to make me see things
through your brave American eyes.” The princess put her arms about
Beverly's neck and drew her close.
“But Mr. Lorry possesses an excellent pair of American eyes,”
protested Miss Beverly, loyally and very happily.
“I know, dear, but they are a man's eyes. Somehow, there is a
difference, you know. I wouldn't dare cry when he was looking, but I
could boo-hoo all day if you were there to comfort me. He thinks I am
very brave—and I'm not,” she confessed, dismally.
“Oh, I'm an awful coward,” explained Beverly, consolingly. “I think
you are the bravest girl in all the world,” she added. “Don't you
remember what you did at—” and then she recalled the stories that had
come from Graustark ahead of the bridal party two years before. Yetive
was finally obliged to place her hand on the enthusiastic visitor's
“Peace,” she cried, blushing. “You make me feel like a—a—what is
it you call her—a dime-novel heroine?”
“A yellow-back girl? Never!” exclaimed Beverly, severely.
Visitors of importance in administration circles came at this moment
and the princess could not refuse to see them. Beverly Calhoun
reluctantly departed, but not until after giving a promise to accompany
the Lorrys to the railway station.
* * * * *
The trunks had gone to be checked, and the household was quieter
than it had been in many days. There was an air of depression about the
place that had its inception in the room upstairs where sober-faced
Halkins served dinner for a not over-talkative young couple.
“It will be all right, dearest,” said Lorry, divining his wife's
thoughts as she sat staring rather soberly straight ahead of her, “Just
as soon as we get to Edelweiss, the whole affair will look so simple
that we can laugh at the fears of to-day. You see, we are a long way
off just now.”
“I am only afraid of what may happen before we get there, Gren,” she
said, simply. He leaned over and kissed her hand, smiling at the
emphasis she unconsciously placed on the pronoun.
Beverly Calhoun was announced just before coffee was served, and a
moment later was in the room. She stopped just inside the door, clicked
her little heels together and gravely brought her hand to “salute.” Her
eyes were sparkling and her lips trembled with suppressed excitement.
“I think I can report to you in Edelweiss next month, general,” she
announced, with soldierly dignity. Her hearers stared at the
picturesque recruit, and Halkins so far forgot himself as to drop Mr.
Lorry's lump of sugar upon the table instead of into the cup.
“Explain yourself, sergeant!” finally fell from Lorry's lips. The
eyes of the princess were beginning to take on a rapturous glow.
“May I have a cup of coffee, please, sir? I've been so excited I
couldn't eat a mouthful at home.” She gracefully slid into the chair
Halkins offered, and broke into an ecstatic giggle that would have
resulted in a court-martial had she been serving any commander but
With a plenteous supply of Southern idioms she succeeded in making
them understand that the major had promised to let her visit friends in
the legation at St. Petersburg in April a month or so after the
departure of the Lorrys.
“He wanted to know where I'd rather spend the Spring—Washin'ton or
Lexin'ton, and I told him St. Petersburg. We had a terrific discussion
and neither of us ate a speck at dinner. Mamma said it would be all
right for me to go to St. Petersburg if Aunt Josephine was still of a
mind to go, too. You see, Auntie was scared almost out of her boots
when she heard there was prospect of war in Graustark, just as though a
tiny little war like that could make any difference away up in
Russia—hundreds of thousands of miles away—” (with a scornful wave of
the hand)—“and then I just made Auntie say she'd go to St. Petersburg
in April—a whole month sooner than she expected to go in the first
“You dear, dear Beverly!” cried Yetive, rushing joyously around the
table to clasp her in her arms.
“And St. Petersburg really isn't a hundred thousand miles from
Edelweiss,” cried Beverly, gaily.
“It's much less than that,” said Lorry, smiling, “But you surely
don't expect to come to Edelweiss if we are fighting. We couldn't think
of letting you do that, you know. Your mother would never—”
“My mother wasn't afraid of a much bigger war than yours can ever
hope to be,” cried Beverly, resentfully. “You can't stop me if I choose
to visit Graustark.”
“Does your father know that you contemplate such a trip?” asked
Lorry, returning her handclasp and looking doubtfully into the swimming
blue eyes of his wife.
“No, he doesn't,” admitted Beverly, a trifle aggressively.
“He could stop you, you know,” he suggested. Yetive was discreetly
“But he won't know anything about it,” cried Beverly triumphantly.
“I could tell him, you know,” said Lorry.
“No, you couldn't do anything so mean as that,” announced
Beverly. “You're not that sort.”
CHAPTER III. ON THE ROAD FROM BALAK
A ponderous coach lumbered slowly, almost painfully, along the
narrow road that skirted the base of a mountain. It was drawn by four
horses, and upon the seat sat two rough, unkempt Russians, one holding
the reins, the other lying back in a lazy doze. The month was June and
all the world seemed soft and sweet and joyous. To the right flowed a
turbulent mountain stream, boiling savagely with the alien waters of
the flood season. Ahead of the creaking coach rode four horsemen, all
heavily armed; another quartette followed some distance in the rear. At
the side of the coach an officer of the Russian mounted police was
riding easily, jangling his accoutrements with a vigor that
disheartened at least one occupant of the vehicle. The windows of the
coach doors were lowered, permitting the fresh mountain air to caress
fondly the face of the young woman who tried to find comfort in one of
the broad seats. Since early morn she had struggled with the hardships
of that seat, and the late afternoon found her very much out of
patience. The opposite seat was the resting place of a substantial
colored woman and a stupendous pile of bags and boxes. The boxes were
continually toppling over and the bags were forever getting under the
feet of the once placid servant, whose face, quite luckily, was much
too black to reflect the anger she was able, otherwise, through years
of practice, to conceal.
“How much farther have we to go, lieutenant?” asked the girl on the
rear seat, plaintively, even humbly. The man was very deliberate with
his English. He had been recommended to her as the best linguist in the
service at Radovitch, and he had a reputation to sustain.
“It another hour is but yet,” he managed to inform her, with a
“Oh, dear,” she sighed, “a whole hour of this!”
“We soon be dar, Miss Bev'ly; jes' yo' mak' up yo' mine to res'
easy-like, an' we—” but the faithful old colored woman's advice was
lost in the wrathful exclamation that accompanied another dislodgment
of bags and boxes. The wheels of the coach had dropped suddenly into a
deep rut. Aunt Fanny's growls were scarcely more potent than poor Miss
“It is getting worse and worse,” exclaimed Aunt Fanny's mistress,
petulantly. “I'm black and blue from head to foot, aren't you, Aunt
“Ah cain' say as to de blue, Miss Bev'ly. Hit's a mos' monstrous bad
road, sho 'nough. Stay up dar, will yo'!” she concluded, jamming a bag
into an upper corner.
Miss Calhoun, tourist extraordinary, again consulted the linguist in
the saddle. She knew at the outset that the quest would be hopeless,
but she could think of no better way to pass the next hour then to
extract a mite of information from the officer.
“Now for a good old chat,” she said, beaming a smile upon the
grizzled Russian. “Is there a decent hotel in the village?” she asked.
They were on the edge of the village before she succeeded in finding
out all that she could, and it was not a great deal, either. She
learned that the town of Balak was in Axphain, scarcely a mile from the
Graustark line. There was an eating and sleeping house on the main
street, and the population of the place did not exceed three hundred.
When Miss Beverly awoke the next morning, sore and distressed, she
looked back upon the night with a horror that sleep had been kind
enough to interrupt only at intervals. The wretched hostelry lived long
in her secret catalogue of terrors. Her bed was not a bed; it was a
torture. The room, the table, the—but it was all too odious for
description. Fatigue was her only friend in that miserable hole. Aunt
Fanny had slept on the floor near her mistress's cot, and it was the
good old colored woman's grumbling that awoke Beverly. The sun was
climbing up the mountains in the east, and there was an air of general
activity about the place. Beverly's watch told her that it was past
“Good gracious!” she exclaimed. “It's nearly noon, Aunt Fanny. Hurry
along here and get me up. We must leave this abominable place in ten
minutes.” She was up and racing about excitedly.
“Befo' breakfas'?” demanded Aunt Fanny weakly.
“Goodness, Aunt Fanny, is that all you think about?”
“Well, honey, yo' all be thinkin' moughty serious 'bout breakfas'
'long to'ahds 'leben o'clock. Dat li'l tummy o' yourn 'll be pow'ful
mad 'cause yo' didn'—”
“Very well, Aunt Fanny, you can run along and have the woman put up
a breakfast for us and we'll eat it on the road. I positively refuse to
eat another mouthful in that awful dining-room. I'll be down in ten
She was down in less. Sleep, no matter how hard-earned, had revived
her spirits materially. She pronounced herself ready for anything;
there was a wholesome disdain for the rigors of the coming ride through
the mountains in the way she gave orders for the start. The Russian
officer met her just outside the entrance to the inn. He was less
English than ever, but he eventually gave her to understand that he had
secured permission to escort her as far as Ganlook, a town in Graustark
not more than fifteen miles from Edelweiss and at least two days from
Balak. Two competent Axphainian guides had been retained, and the party
was quite ready to start. He had been warned of the presence of
brigands in the wild mountainous passes north of Ganlook. The Russians
could go no farther than Ganlook because of a royal edict from
Edelweiss forbidding the nearer approach of armed forces. At that town,
however, he was sure she easily could obtain an escort of Graustarkian
soldiers. As the big coach crawled up the mountain road and further
into the oppressive solitudes, Beverly Calhoun drew from the difficult
lieutenant considerable information concerning the state of affairs in
Graustark. She had been eagerly awaiting the time when something
definite could be learned. Before leaving St. Petersburg early in the
week she was assured that a state of war did not exist. The Princess
Yetive had been in Edelweiss for six weeks. A formal demand was framed
soon after her return from America, requiring Dawsbergen to surrender
the person of Prince Gabriel to the authorities of Graustark. To this
demand there was no definite response, Dawsbergen insolently requesting
time in which to consider the proposition. Axphain immediately sent an
envoy to Edelweiss to say that all friendly relations between the two
governments would cease unless Graustark took vigorous steps to
recapture the royal assassin. On one side of the unhappy principality a
strong, overbearing princess was egging Graustark on to fight, while on
the other side an equally aggressive people defied Yetive to come and
take the fugitive if she could. The poor princess was between two ugly
alternatives, and a struggle seemed inevitable. At Balak it was learned
that Axphain had recently sent a final appeal to the government of
Graustark, and it was no secret that something like a threat
accompanied the message.
Prince Gabriel was in complete control at Serros and was disposed to
laugh at the demands of his late captors. His half-brother, the
dethroned Prince Dantan, was still hiding in the fastnesses of the
hills, protected by a small company of nobles, and there was no hope
that he ever could regain his crown. Gabriel's power over the army was
supreme. The general public admired Dantan, but it was helpless in the
face of circumstances.
“But why should Axphain seek to harass Graustark at this time?”
demanded Beverly Calhoun, in perplexity and wrath. “I should think the
brutes would try to help her.”
“There is an element of opposition to the course the government is
taking,” the officer informed her in his own way, “but it is greatly in
the minority. The Axphainians have hated Graustark since the last war,
and the princess despises this American. It is an open fact that the
Duke of Mizrox leads the opposition to Princess Volga, and she is sure
to have him beheaded if the chance affords. He is friendly to Graustark
and has been against the policy of his princess from the start.”
“I'd like to hug the Duke of Mizrox,” cried Beverly, warmly. The
officer did not understand her, but Aunt Fanny was scandalized.
“Good Lawd!” she muttered to the boxes and bags.
As the coach rolled deeper and deeper into the rock-shadowed
wilderness, Beverly Calhoun felt an undeniable sensation of awe
creeping over her. The brave, impetuous girl had plunged gaily into the
project which now led her into the deadliest of uncertainties, with but
little thought of the consequences.
The first stage of the journey by coach had been good fun. They had
passed along pleasant roads, through quaint villages and among
interesting people, and progress had been rapid. The second stage had
presented rather terrifying prospects, and the third day promised even
greater vicissitudes. Looking from the coach windows out upon the
quiet, desolate grandeur of her surroundings, poor Beverly began to
appreciate how abjectly helpless and alone she was. Her companions were
ugly, vicious-looking men, any one of whom could inspire terror by a
look. She had entrusted herself to the care of these strange creatures
in the moment of inspired courage and now she was constrained to regret
her action. True, they had proved worthy protectors as far as they had
gone, but the very possibilities that lay in their power were
appalling, now that she had time to consider the situation.
The officer in charge had been recommended as a trusted servant of
the Czar; an American consul had secured the escort for her direct from
the frontier patrol authorities. Men high in power had vouched for the
integrity of the detachment, but all this was forgotten in the mighty
solitude of the mountains. She was beginning to fear her escort more
than she feared the brigands of the hills.
Treachery seemed printed on their backs as they rode ahead of her.
The big officer was ever polite and alert, but she was ready to
distrust him on the slightest excuse. These men could not help knowing
that she was rich, and it was reasonable for them to suspect that she
carried money and jewels with her. In her mind's eye she could picture
these traitors rifling her bags and boxes in some dark pass, and then
there were other horrors that almost petrified her when she allowed
herself to think of them.
Here and there the travelers passed by rude cots where dwelt woodmen
and mountaineers, and at long intervals a solitary but picturesque
horseman stood aside and gave them the road. As the coach penetrated
deeper into the gorge, signs of human life and activity became fewer.
The sun could not send his light into this shadowy tomb of granite. The
rattle of the wheels and the clatter of the horses' hoofs sounded like
a constant crash of thunder in the ears of the tender traveler, a
dainty morsel among hawks and wolves.
There was an unmistakable tremor in her voice when she at last found
heart to ask the officer where they were to spend the night. It was far
past noon and Aunt Fanny had suggested opening the lunch-baskets. One
of the guides was called back, the leader being as much in the dark as
“There is no village within twenty miles,” he said, “and we must
sleep in the pass.”
Beverly's voice faltered. “Out here in all this awful—” Then she
caught herself quickly. It came to her suddenly that she must not let
these men see that she was apprehensive. Her voice was a trifle shrill
and her eyes glistened with a strange new light as she went on,
changing her tack completely: “How romantic! I've often wanted to do
something like this.”
The officer looked bewildered, and said nothing. Aunt Fanny was
speechless. Later on, when the lieutenant had gone ahead to confer with
the guides about the suspicious actions of a small troop of horsemen
they had seen, Beverly confided to the old negress that she was
frightened almost out of her boots, but that she'd die before the men
should see a sign of cowardice in a Calhoun. Aunt Fanny was not so
proud and imperious. It was with difficulty that her high-strung young
mistress suppressed the wails that long had been under restraint in
Aunt Fanny's huge and turbulent bosom.
“Good Lawd, Miss Bev'ly, dey'll chop us all to pieces an' take ouah
jewl'ry an' money an' clo'es and ev'ything else we done got about us.
Good Lawd, le's tu'n back, Miss Bev'ly. We ain' got no mo' show out
heah in dese mountings dan a—”
“Be still, Aunt Fanny!” commanded Beverly, with a fine show of
courage. “You must be brave. Don't you see we can't turn back? It's
just as dangerous and a heap sight more so. If we let on we're not one
bit afraid they'll respect us, don't you see, and men never harm women
whom they respect.”
“Umph!” grunted Aunt Fanny, with exaggerated irony.
“Well, they never do!” maintained Beverly, who was not at all sure
about it. “And they look like real nice men—honest men, even though
they have such awful whiskers.”
“Dey's de wust trash Ah eveh did see,” exploded Aunt Fanny.
“Sh! Don't let them hear you,” whispered Beverly.
In spite of her terror and perplexity, she was compelled to smile.
It was all so like the farce comedies one sees at the theatre.
As the officer rode up, his face was pale in the shadowy light of
the afternoon and he was plainly nervous.
“What is the latest news from the front?” she inquired cheerfully.
“The men refuse to ride on,” he exclaimed, speaking rapidly, making
it still harder for her to understand. “Our advance guard has met a
party of hunters from Axphain. They insist that you—'the fine lady in
the coach'—are the Princess Yetive, returning from a secret visit to
St. Petersburg, where you went to plead for assistance from the Czar.”
Beverly Calhoun gasped in astonishment. It was too incredible to
believe. It was actually ludicrous. She laughed heartily. “How
“I am well aware that you are not the Princess Yetive,” he continued
emphatically; “but what can I do; the men won't believe me. They swear
they have been tricked and are panic-stricken over the situation. The
hunters tell them that the Axphain authorities, fully aware of the
hurried flight of the Princess through these wilds, are preparing to
intercept her. A large detachment of soldiers are already across the
Graustark frontier. It is only a question of time before the 'red legs'
will be upon them. I have assured them that their beautiful charge is
not the Princess, but an American girl, and that there is no mystery
about the coach and escort. All in vain. The Axphain guides already
feel that their heads are on the block; while as for the Cossacks, not
even my dire threats of the awful anger of the White Czar, when he
finds they have disobeyed his commands, will move them.”
“Speak to your men once more, sir, and promise them big purses of
gold when we reach Ganlook. I have no money or valuables with me; but
there I can obtain plenty,” said Beverly, shrewdly thinking it better
that they should believe her to be without funds.
The cavalcade had halted during this colloquy. All the men were
ahead conversing sullenly and excitedly with much gesticulation. The
driver, a stolid creature, seemingly indifferent to all that was going
on, alone remained at his post. The situation, apparently dangerous,
was certainly most annoying. But if Beverly could have read the mind of
that silent figure on the box, she would have felt slightly relieved,
for he was infinitely more anxious to proceed than even she; but from
far different reasons. He was a Russian convict, who had escaped on the
way to Siberia. Disguised as a coachman he was seeking life and safety
in Graustark, or any out-of-the-way place. It mattered little to him
where the escort concluded to go. He was going ahead. He dared not go
back—he must go on.
At the end of half an hour, the officer returned; all hope had gone
from his face. “It is useless!” he cried out. “The guides refuse to
proceed. See! They are going off with their countrymen! We are lost
without them. I do not know what to do. We cannot get to Ganlook; I do
not know the way, and the danger is great. Ah! Madam! Here they come!
The Cossacks are going back.”
As he spoke, the surly mutineers were riding slowly towards the
coach. Every man had his pistol on the high pommel of the saddle. Their
faces wore an ugly look. As they passed the officer, one of them,
pointing ahead of him with his sword, shouted savagely, “Balak!”
It was conclusive and convincing. They were deserting her.
“Oh, oh, oh! The cowards!” sobbed Beverly in rage and despair. “I
must go on! Is it possible that even such men would leave—”
She was interrupted by the voice of the officer, who, raising his
cap to her, commanded at the same time the driver to turn his horses
and follow the escort to Balak.
“What is that?” demanded Beverly in alarm.
From far off came the sound of firearms. A dozen shots were fired,
and reverberated down through the gloomy pass ahead of the coach.
“They are fighting somewhere in the hills in front of us,” answered
the now frightened officer. Turning quickly, he saw the deserting
horsemen halt, listen a minute, and then spur their horses. He cried
out sharply to the driver, “Come, there! Turn round! We have no time to
With a savage grin, the hitherto motionless driver hurled some
insulting remark at the officer, who was already following his men, now
in full flight down the road, and settling himself firmly on the seat,
taking a fresh grip of the reins, he yelled to his horses, at the same
time lashing them furiously with his whip, and started the coach ahead
at a fearful pace. His only thought was to get away as far as possible
from the Russian officer, then deliberately desert the coach and its
occupants and take to the hills.
CHAPTER IV. THE RAGGED RETINUE
Thoroughly mystified by the action of the driver and at length
terrified by the pace that carried them careening along the narrow
road, Beverly cried out to him, her voice shrill with alarm. Aunt Fanny
was crouching on the floor of the coach, between the seats, groaning
“Stop! Where are you going?” cried Beverly, putting her head
recklessly through the window. If the man heard her he gave no evidence
of the fact. His face was set forward and he was guiding the horses
with a firm, unquivering hand. The coach rattled and bounded along the
dangerous way hewn in the side of the mountain. A misstep or a false
turn might easily start the clumsy vehicle rolling down the declivity
on the right. The convict was taking desperate chances, and with a
cool, calculating brain, prepared to leap to the ground in case of
accident and save himself, without a thought for the victims inside.
“Stop! Turn around!” she cried in a frenzy. “We shall be killed! Are
By this time they had struck a descent in the road and were rushing
along at breakneck speed into oppressive shadows that bore the first
imprints of night. Realizing at last that her cries were falling upon
purposely deaf ears, Beverly Calhoun sank back into the seat, weak and
terror-stricken. It was plain to her that the horses were not running
away, for the man had been lashing them furiously. There was but one
conclusion: he was deliberately taking her farther into the mountain
fastnesses, his purpose known only to himself. A hundred terrors
presented themselves to her as she lay huddled against the side of the
coach, her eyes closed tightly, her tender body tossed furiously about
with the sway of the vehicle. There was the fundamental fear that she
would be dashed to death down the side of the mountain, but apart from
this her quick brain was evolving all sorts of possible endings—none
short of absolute disaster.
Even as she prayed that something might intervene to check the mad
rush and to deliver her from the horrors of the moment, the raucous
voice of the driver was heard calling to his horses and the pace became
slower. The awful rocking and the jolting grew less severe, the clatter
resolved itself into a broken rumble, and then the coach stopped with a
Dragging herself from the corner, poor Beverly Calhoun, no longer a
disdainful heroine, gazed piteously out into the shadows, expecting the
murderous blade of the driver to meet her as she did so. Pauloff had
swung from the box of the coach and was peering first into the woodland
below and then upon the rocks to the left. He wore the expression of a
man trapped and seeking means of escape. Suddenly he darted behind the
coach, almost brushing against Beverly's hat as he passed the window.
She opened her lips to call to him, but even as she did so he took to
his heels and raced back over the road they had traveled so
Overcome by surprise and dismay, she only could watch the flight in
silence. Less than a hundred feet from where the coach was standing he
turned to the right and was lost among the rocks. Ahead, four horses,
covered with sweat, were panting and heaving as if in great distress
after their mad run. Aunt Fanny was still moaning and praying by turns
in the bottom of the carriage. Darkness was settling down upon the
pass, and objects a hundred yards away were swallowed by the gloom.
There was no sound save the blowing of the tired animals and the
moaning of the old negress. Beverly realized with a sinking heart that
they were alone and helpless in the mountains with night upon them.
She never knew where the strength and courage came from, but she
forced open the stubborn coachdoor and scrambled to the ground, looking
frantically in all directions for a single sign of hope. In the most
despairing terror she had ever experienced, she started toward the lead
horses, hoping against hope that at least one of her men had remained
A man stepped quietly from the inner side of the road and advanced
with the uncertain tread of one who is overcome by amazement. He was a
stranger, and wore an odd, uncouth garb. The failing light told her
that he was not one of her late protectors. She shrank back with a
faint cry of alarm, ready to fly to the protecting arms of hopeless
Aunt Fanny if her uncertain legs could carry her. At the same instant
another ragged stranger, then two, three, four, or five, appeared as if
by magic, some near her, others approaching from the shadows.
“Who—who in heaven's name are you?” she faltered. The sound of her
own voice in a measure restored the courage that had been paralyzed.
Unconsciously this slim sprig of southern valor threw back her
shoulders and lifted her chin. If they were brigands they should not
find her a cringing coward. After all, she was a Calhoun.
The man she had first observed stopped near the horses' heads and
peered intently at her from beneath a broad and rakish hat. He was tall
and appeared to be more respectably clad than his fellows, although
there was not one who looked as though he possessed a complete outfit
of wearing apparel.
“Poor wayfarers, may it please your highness,” replied the tall
vagabond, bowing low. To her surprise he spoke in very good English;
his voice was clear, and there was a tinge of polite irony in the
tones. “But all people are alike in the mountains. The king and the
thief, the princess and the jade live in the common fold,” and his hat
swung so low that it touched the ground.
“I am powerless. I only implore you to take what valuables you may
find and let us proceed unharmed—” she cried, rapidly, eager to have
“Pray, how can your highness proceed? You have no guide, no driver,
no escort,” said the man, mockingly. Beverly looked at him appealingly,
utterly without words to reply. The tears were welling to her eyes and
her heart was throbbing like that of a captured bird. In after life she
was able to picture in her mind's eye all the details of that tableau
in the mountain pass—the hopeless coach, the steaming horses, the
rakish bandit, and his picturesque men, the towering crags, and a mite
of a girl facing the end of everything.
“Your highness is said to be brave, but even your wonderful courage
can avail nothing in this instance,” said the leader, pleasantly. “Your
escort has fled as though pursued by something stronger than shadows;
your driver has deserted; your horses are half-dead; you are indeed, as
you have said, powerless. And you are, besides all these, in the
clutches of a band of merciless cutthroats.”
“Oh,” moaned Beverly, suddenly leaning against the fore wheel, her
eyes almost starting from her head. The leader laughed quietly—yes,
good-naturedly. “Oh, you won't—you won't kill us?” She had time to
observe that there were smiles on the faces of all the men within the
circle of light.
“Rest assured, your highness,” said the leader, leaning upon his
rifle-barrel with careless grace, “we intend no harm to you. Every man
you meet in Graustark is not a brigand, I trust, for your sake. We are
simple hunters, and not what we may seem. It is fortunate that you have
fallen into honest hands. There is someone in the coach?” he asked,
quickly alert. A prolonged groan proved to Beverly that Aunt Fanny had
screwed up sufficient courage to look out of the window.
“My old servant,” she half whispered. Then, as several of the men
started toward the door: “But she is old and wouldn't harm a fly.
Please, please don't hurt her.”
“Compose yourself; she is safe,” said the leader. By this time it
was quite dark. At a word from him two or three men lighted lanterns.
The picture was more weird than ever in the fitful glow. “May I ask,
your highness, how do you intend to reach Edelweiss in your present
condition. You cannot manage those horses, and besides, you do not know
“Aren't you going to rob us?” demanded Beverly, hope springing to
the surface with a joyful bound. The stranger laughed heartily, and
shook his head.
“Do we not look like honest men?” he cried, with a wave of his hand
toward his companions. Beverly looked dubious. “We live the good, clean
life of the wilderness. Out-door life is necessary for our health. We
could not live in the city,” he went on with grim humor. For the first
time, Beverly noticed that he wore a huge black patch over his left
eye, held in place by a cord. He appeared more formidable than ever
under the light of critical inspection.
CHAPTER IV. THE RAGGED RETINUE
“I am very much relieved,” said Beverly, who was not at all
relieved.” But why have you stopped us in this manner?”
“Stopped you?” cried the man with the patch. “I implore you to unsay
that, your highness. Your coach was quite at a standstill before we
knew of its presence. You do us a grave injustice.”
“It's very strange,” muttered Beverly, somewhat taken aback.
“Have you observed that it is quite dark?” asked the leader, putting
away his brief show of indignation.
“Dear me; so it is!” cried she, now able to think more clearly.
“And you are miles from an inn or house of any kind,” he went on.
“Do you expect to stay here all night?”
“I'm—I'm not afraid,” bravely shivered Beverly.
“It is most dangerous.”
“I have a revolver,” the weak little voice went on.
“Oho! What is it for?”
“To use in case of emergency.”
“Such as repelling brigands who suddenly appear upon the scene?”
“May I ask why you did not use it this evening?”
“Because it is locked up in one of my bags—I don't know just which
one—and Aunt Fanny has the key,” confessed Beverly.
The chief of the “honest men” laughed again, a clear, ringing laugh
that bespoke supreme confidence in his right to enjoy himself.
“And who is Aunt Fanny?” he asked, covering his patch carefully with
his slouching hat.
“My servant. She's colored.”
“Colored?” he asked in amazement. “What do you mean?”
“Why, she's a negress. Don't you know what a colored person is?”
“You mean she is a slave—a black slave?”
“We don't own slaves any mo'—more.” He looked more puzzled than
ever—then at last, to satisfy himself, walked over and peered into the
coach. Aunt Fanny set up a dismal howl; an instant later Sir Honesty
was pushed aside, and Miss Calhoun was anxiously trying to comfort her
old friend through the window. The man looked on in silent wonder for a
minute, and then strode off to where a group of his men stood talking.
“Is yo' daid yit, Miss Bev'ly—is de end came?” moaned Aunt Fanny.
Beverly could not repress a smile.
“I am quite alive, Auntie. These men will not hurt us. They are
very nice gentlemen.” She uttered the last observation in a loud
voice and it had its effect, for the leader came to her side with long
“Convince your servant that we mean no harm, your highness,” he said
eagerly, a new deference in his voice and manner. “We have only the
best of motives in mind. True, the hills are full of lawless fellows
and we are obliged to fight them almost daily, but you have fallen in
with honest men—very nice gentlemen, I trust. Less than an hour ago we
put a band of robbers to flight—”
“I heard the shooting,” cried Beverly. “It was that which put my
escort to flight.”
“They could not have been soldiers of Graustark, then, your
highness,” quite gallantly.
“They were Cossacks, or whatever you call them. But, pray, why do
you call me 'your highness'?” demanded Beverly. The tall leader swept
the ground with his hat once more.
“All the outside world knows the Princess Yetive—why not the humble
mountain man? You will pardon me, but every man in the hills knows that
you are to pass through on the way from St. Petersburg to Ganlook. We
are not so far from the world, after all, we rough people of the hills.
We know that your highness left St. Petersburg by rail last Sunday and
took to the highway day before yesterday, because the floods had washed
away the bridges north of Axphain. Even the hills have eyes and ears.”
Beverly listened with increasing perplexity. It was true that she
had left St. Petersburg on Sunday; that the unprecedented floods had
stopped all railway traffic in the hills, compelling her to travel for
many miles by stage, and that the whole country was confusing her in
some strange way with the Princess Yetive. The news had evidently sped
through Axphain and the hills with the swiftness of fire. It would be
useless to deny the story; these men would not believe her. In a flash
she decided that it would be best to pose for the time being as the
ruler of Graustark. It remained only for her to impress upon Aunt Fanny
the importance of this resolution.
“What wise old hills they must be,” she said, with evasive
enthusiasm.” You cannot expect me to admit, however, that I am the
princess,” she went on.
“It would not be just to your excellent reputation for tact if you
did so, your highness,” calmly spoke the man. “It is quite as easy to
say that you are not the princess as to say that you are, so what
matters, after all? We reserve the right, however, to do homage to the
queen who rules over these wise old hills. I offer you the humble
services of myself and my companions. We are yours to command.”
“I am very grateful to find that you are not brigands, believe me,”
said Beverly. “Pray tell me who you are, then, and you shall be
sufficiently rewarded for your good intentions.”
“I? Oh, your highness, I am Baldos, the goat-hunter, a poor subject
for reward at your hands. I may as well admit that I am a poacher, and
have no legal right to the prosperity of your hills. The only reward I
can ask is forgiveness for trespassing upon the property of others.”
“You shall receive pardon for all transgressions. But you must get
me to some place of safety,” said Beverly, eagerly.
“And quickly, too, you might well have added,” he said, lightly.
“The horses have rested, I think, so with your permission we may
proceed. I know of a place where you may spend the night comfortably
and be refreshed for the rough journey to-morrow.”
“To-morrow? How can I go on? I am alone,” she cried, despairingly.
“Permit me to remind you that you are no longer alone. You have a
ragged following, your highness, but it shall be a loyal one. Will you
re-enter the coach? It is not far to the place I speak of, and I myself
will drive you there. Come, it is getting late, and your retinue, at
least, is hungry.”
He flung open the coach door, and his hat swept the ground once
more. The light of a lantern played fitfully upon his dark, gaunt face,
with its gallant smile and ominous patch. She hesitated, fear entering
her soul once more. He looked up quickly and saw the indecision in her
eyes, the mute appeal.
“Trust me, your highness,” he said, gravely, and she allowed him to
hand her into the coach.
A moment later he was upon the driver's box, reins in hand. Calling
out to his companions in a language strange to Beverly, he cracked the
whip, and once more they were lumbering over the wretched road. Beverly
sank back into the seat with a deep sigh of resignation.
“Well, I'm in for it,” she thought. “It doesn't matter whether they
are thieves or angels, I reckon I'll have to take what comes. He
doesn't look very much like an angel, but he looked at me just now as
if he thought I were one. Dear me, I wish I were back in Washin'ton!”
CHAPTER V. THE INN OF THE HAWK AND
Two of the men walked close beside the door, one of them bearing a
lantern. They conversed in low tones and in a language which Beverly
could not understand. After awhile she found herself analyzing the garb
and manner of the men. She was saying to herself that here were her
first real specimens of Graustark peasantry, and they were to mark an
ineffaceable spot in her memory. They were dark, strong-faced men of
medium height, with fierce, black eyes and long black hair. As no two
were dressed alike, it was impossible to recognize characteristic
styles of attire. Some were in the rude, baggy costumes of the peasant
as she had imagined him; others were dressed in the tight-fitting but
dilapidated uniforms of the soldiery, while several were in clothes
partly European and partly Oriental. There were hats and fezzes and
caps, some with feathers In the bands, others without. The man nearest
the coach wore the dirty gray uniform of as army officer, full of holes
and rents, while another strode along in a pair of baggy yellow
trousers and a dusty London dinner jacket. All in all, it was the
motliest band of vagabonds she had ever seen. There were at least ten
or a dozen in the party. While a few carried swords, all lugged the
long rifles and crooked daggers of the Tartars.
“Aunt Fanny,” Beverly whispered, suddenly moving to the side of the
subdued servant, “where is my revolver?” It had come to her like a
flash that a subsequent emergency should not find her unprepared. Aunt
Fanny's jaw dropped, and her eyes were like white rings in a black
“Good Lawd—wha—what fo' Miss Bev'ly—”
“Sh! Don't call me Miss Bev'ly. Now, just you pay 'tention to me and
I'll tell you something queer. Get my revolver right away, and don't
let those men see what you are doing.” While Aunt Fanny's trembling
fingers went in search of the firearm, Beverly outlined the situation
briefly but explicitly. The old woman was not slow to understand. Her
wits sharpened by fear, she grasped Beverly's instructions with
“Ve'y well, yo' highness,” she said with fine reverence, “Ah'll
p'ocuah de bottle o' pepp'mint fo' yo' if yo' jes don' mine me pullin'
an' haulin' 'mongst dese boxes. Mebbe yo' all 'druther hab de gingeh?”
With this wonderful subterfuge as a shield she dug slyly into one of
the bags and pulled forth a revolver. Under ordinary circumstances she
would have been mortally afraid to touch it, but not so in this
emergency. Beverly shoved the weapon into the pocket of her gray
“I feel much better now, Aunt Fanny,” she said, and Aunt Fanny gave
a vast chuckle.
“Yas, ma'am, indeed,—yo' highness,” she agreed, suavely.
The coach rolled along for half an hour, and then stopped with a
sudden jolt. An instant later the tall driver appeared at the window,
his head uncovered. A man hard by held a lantern.
“Qua vandos ar deltanet, yos serent,” said the leader,
showing his white teeth in a triumphant smile. His exposed eye seemed
to be glowing with pleasure and excitement.
“What?” murmured Beverly, hopelessly. A puzzled expression came into
his face. Then his smile deepened and his eye took on a knowing gleam.
“Ah, I see,” he said, gaily, “your highness prefers not to speak the
language of Graustark. Is it necessary for me to repeat in English?”
“I really wish you would,” said Beverly, catching her breath. “Just
to see how it sounds, you know.”
“Your every wish shall be gratified. I beg to inform you that we
have reached the Inn of the Hawk and Raven. This is where we dwelt last
night. Tomorrow we, too, abandon the place, so our fortunes may run
together for some hours, at least. There is but little to offer you in
the way of nourishment, and there are none of the comforts of a palace.
Yet princesses can no more be choosers than beggars when the fare's in
one pot. Come, your highness, let me conduct you to the guest chamber
of the Inn of the Hawk and Raven.”
Beverly took his hand and stepped to the ground, looking about in
wonder and perplexity.
“I see no inn,” she murmured apprehensively.
“Look aloft, your highness. That great black canopy is the roof; we
are standing upon the floor, and the dark shadows just beyond the
circle of light are the walls of the Hawk and Raven. This is the
largest tavern in all Graustark. Its dimensions are as wide as the
“You mean that there is no inn at all?” the girl cried in dismay.
“Alas, I must confess it. And yet there is shelter here. Come with
me. Let your servant follow.” He took her by the hand, and led her away
from the coach, a ragged lantern-bearer preceding. Beverly's little
right hand was rigidly clutching the revolver in her pocket. It was a
capacious pocket, and the muzzle of the weapon bored defiantly into a
timid powder-rag that lay on the bottom. The little leather purse from
which it escaped had its silver lips opened as if in a broad grin of
derision, reveling in the plight of the chamois. The guide's hand was
at once firm and gentle, his stride bold, yet easy. His rakish hat,
with its aggressive red feather, towered a full head above Beverly's
“Have you no home at all—no house in which to sleep?” Beverly
managed to ask.
“I live in a castle of air,” said he, waving his hand gracefully. “I
sleep in the house of my fathers,”
“You poor fellow,” cried Beverly, pityingly. He laughed and absently
patted the hilt of his sword.
She heard the men behind them turning the coach into the glen
through which they walked carefully. Her feet fell upon a soft, grassy
sward and the clatter of stones was now no longer heard. They were
among the shadowy trees, gaunt trunks of enormous size looming up in
the light of the lanterns. Unconsciously her thoughts went over to the
Forest of Arden and the woodland home of Rosalind, as she had imagined
it to be. Soon there came to her ears the swish of waters, as of some
turbulent river hurrying by. Instinctively she drew back and her eyes
were set with alarm upon the black wall of night ahead. Yetive had
spoken more than once of this wilderness. Many an unlucky traveler had
been lost forever in its fastnesses.
“It is the river, your highness. There is no danger. I will not lead
you into it,” he said, a trifle roughly. “We are low in the valley and
there are marshes yonder when the river is in its natural bed. The
floods have covered the low grounds, and there is a torrent coming down
from the hills. Here we are, your highness. This is the Inn of the Hawk
He bowed and pointed with his hat to the smouldering fire a short
distance ahead. They had turned a bend in the overhanging cliff, and
were very close to the retreat before she saw the glow.
The fire was in the open air and directly in front of a deep cleft
in the rocky background. Judging by the sound, the river could not be
more than two hundred feet away. Men came up with lanterns and others
piled brush upon the fire. In a very short time the glen was weirdly
illuminated by the dancing flames. From her seat on a huge log, Beverly
was thus enabled to survey a portion of her surroundings. The
overhanging ledge of rock formed a wide, deep canopy, underneath which
was perfect shelter. The floor seemed to be rich, grassless loam, and
here and there were pallets of long grass, evidently the couches of
these homeless men. All about were huge trees, and in the direction of
the river the grass grew higher and then gave place to reeds. The
foliage above was so dense that the moon and stars were invisible.
There was a deathly stillness in the air. The very loneliness was so
appalling that Beverly's poor little heart was in a quiver of dread.
Aunt Fanny, who sat near by, had not spoken since leaving the coach,
but her eyes were expressively active.
The tall leader stood near the fire, conversing with half a dozen of
his followers. Miss Calhoun's eyes finally rested upon this central
figure in the strange picture. He was attired in a dark-gray uniform
that reminded her oddly of the dragoon choruses in the comic operas at
home. The garments, while torn and soiled, were well-fitting. His
shoulders were broad and square, his hips narrow, his legs long and
straight. There was an air of impudent grace about him that went well
with his life and profession. Surely, here was a careless freelance
upon whom life weighed lightly, while death “stood afar off” and
despaired. The light of the fire brought his gleaming face into bold
relief, for his hat was off. Black and thick was his hair, rumpled and
apparently uncared for. The face was lean, smooth and strong, with a
devil-may-care curve at the corners of the mouth. Beverly found herself
lamenting the fact that such an interesting face should be marred by an
ugly black patch, covering she knew not what manner of defect. As for
the rest of them, they were a grim company. Some were young and
beardless, others were old and grizzly, but all were active, alert and
strong. The leader appeared to be the only one in the party who could
speak and understand the English language. As Beverly sat and watched
his virile, mocking face, and studied his graceful movements, she found
herself wondering how an ignorant, homeless wanderer in the hills could
be so poetic and so cultured as this fellow seemed to be.
Three or four men, who were unmistakably of a lower order than their
companions, set about preparing a supper. Others unhitched the tired
horses and led them off toward the river. Two dashing young fellows
carried the seat-cushions under the rocky canopy and constructed an
elaborate couch for the “Princess.” The chief, with his own hands, soon
began the construction of a small chamber in this particular corner of
the cave, near the opening. The walls of the chamber were formed of
carriage robes and blankets, cloaks and oak branches.
“The guest chamber, your highness,” he said, approaching her with a
smile at the conclusion of his work.
“It has been most interesting to watch you,” she said, rising.
“And it has been a delight to interest you,” he responded. “You will
find seclusion there, and you need see none of us until it pleases
She looked him fairly in the eye for a moment, and then impulsively
extended her hand. He clasped it warmly, but not without some show of
“I am trusting you implicitly,” she said.
“The knave is glorified,” was his simple rejoinder. He conducted her
to the improvised bed-chamber, Aunt Fanny following with loyal but
uncertain tread. “I regret, your highness, that the conveniences are so
few. We have no landlady except Mother Earth, no waiters, no porters,
no maids, in the Inn of the Hawk and Raven. This being a men's hotel,
the baths are on the river-front. I am having water brought to your
apartments, however, but it is with deepest shame and sorrow that I
confess we have no towels.”
She laughed so heartily that his face brightened perceptibly, whilst
the faces of his men turned in their direction as though by concert.
“It is a typical mountain resort, then,” she said, “I think I can
manage very well if you will fetch my bags to my room, sir.”
“By the way, will you have dinner served in your room?” very
“If you don't mind, I'd like to eat in the public dining-room,” said
she. A few minutes later Beverly was sitting upon one of her small
trunks and Aunt Fanny was laboriously brushing her dark hair.
“It's very jolly being a princess,” murmured Miss Calhoun. She had
bathed her face in one of the leather buckets from the coach, and the
dust of the road had been brushed away by the vigorous lady-in-waiting.
“Yas, ma'am, Miss—yo' highness, hit's monstrous fine fo' yo', but
whar is Ah goin' to sleep? Out yondah, wif all dose scalawags?” said
Aunt Fanny, rebelliously.
“You shall have a bed in here, Aunt Fanny,” said Beverly.
“Dey's de queeres' lot o' tramps Ah eveh did see, an' Ah wouldn'
trust 'em 's fer as Ah could heave a brick house.”
“But the leader is such a very courteous gentleman,” remonstrated
“Yas, ma'am; he mussa came f'm Gawgia or Kaintuck,” was Aunt Fanny's
The pseudo-princess dined with the vagabonds that night. She sat on
the log beside the tall leader, and ate heartily of the broth and
broiled goatmeat, the grapes and the nuts, and drank of the spring
water which took the place of wine and coffee and cordial. It was a
strange supper amid strange environments, but she enjoyed it as she had
never before enjoyed a meal. The air was full of romance and danger,
and her imagination was enthralled. Everything was so new and unreal
that she scarcely could believe herself awake. The world seemed to have
gone back to the days of Robin Hood and his merry men.
“You fare well at the Inn of the Hawk and Raven,” she said to him,
her voice tremulous with excitement. He looked mournfully at her for a
moment and then smiled naively.
“It is the first wholesome meal we have had in two days,” he
“You don't mean it!”
“Yes. We were lucky with the guns to-day. Fate was kind to us—and
to you, for we are better prepared to entertain royalty to-day than at
any time since I have been in the hills of Graustark.”
“Then you have not always lived in Graustark?”
“Alas, no, your highness. I have lived elsewhere.”
“But you were born in the principality?”
“I am a subject of its princess in heart from this day forth, but
not by birth or condition. I am a native of the vast domain known to a
few of us as Circumstance,” and he smiled rather recklessly.
“You are a poet, a delicious poet,” cried Beverly, forgetting
herself in her enthusiasm.
“Perhaps that is why I am hungry and unshorn. It had not occurred to
me in that light. When you are ready to retire, your highness,” he
said, abruptly rising, “we shall be pleased to consider the Inn of the
Hawk and Raven closed for the night. Having feasted well, we should
sleep well. We have a hard day before us. With your consent, I shall
place my couch of grass near your door. I am the porter. You have but
to call if anything is desired.”
She was tired, but she would have sat up all night rather than miss
any of the strange romance that had been thrust upon her. But Sir
Red-feather's suggestion savored of a command and she reluctantly made
her way to the flapping blanket that marked the entrance to the
bed-chamber. He drew the curtain aside, swung his hat low and muttered
a soft goodnight.
“May your highness's dreams be pleasant ones!” he said.
“Thank you,” said she, and the curtain dropped impertinently. “That
was very cool of him, I must say,” she added, as she looked at the
When she went to sleep, she never knew; she was certain that her
eyes were rebellious for a long time and that she wondered how her gray
dress would look after she had slept in it all night. She heard low
singing as if in the distance, but after a while the stillness became
so intense that its pressure almost suffocated her. The rush of the
river grew louder and louder and there was a swishing sound that died
in her ears almost as she wondered what it meant. Her last waking
thoughts were of the “black-patch” poet. Was he lying near the door?
She was awakened in the middle of the night by the violent flapping
of her chamber door. Startled, she sat bolt upright and strained her
eyes to pierce the mysterious darkness. Aunt Fanny, on her bed of
grass, stirred convulsively, but did not awake. The blackness of the
strange chamber was broken ever and anon by faint flashes of light from
without, and she lived through long minutes of terror before it dawned
upon her that a thunderstorm was brewing. The wind was rising, and the
night seemed agog with excitement. Beverly crept from her couch and
felt her way to the fluttering doorway. Drawing aside the blanket she
peered forth into the night, her heart jumping with terror. Her
highness was very much afraid of thunder and lightning.
The fire in the open had died down until naught remained but a few
glowing embers. These were blown into brilliancy by the wind, casting a
steady red light over the scene. There was but one human figure in
sight. Beside the fire stood the tall wanderer. He was hatless and
coatless, and his arms were folded across his chest. Seemingly
oblivious to the approach of the storm, he stood staring into the heap
of ashes at his feet. His face was toward her, every feature plainly
distinguishable in the faint glow from the fire. To her amazement the
black patch was missing from the eye; and, what surprised her almost to
the point of exclaiming aloud, there appeared to be absolutely no
reason for its presence there at any time. There was no mark or blemish
upon or about the eye; it was as clear and penetrating as its fellow,
darkly gleaming in the red glow from below. Moreover, Beverly saw that
he was strikingly handsome—a strong, manly face. The highly
imaginative southern girl's mind reverted to the first portraits of
Napoleon she had seen.
Suddenly he started, threw up his head and looking up to the sky
uttered some strange words. Then he strode abruptly toward her doorway.
She fell back breathless. He stopped just outside, and she knew that he
was listening for sounds from within. After many minutes she stealthily
looked forth again. He was standing near the fire, his back toward her,
looking off into the night.
The wind was growing stronger; the breezes fanned the night into a
rush of shivery coolness. Constant flickerings of lightning illuminated
the forest, transforming the tree-tops into great black waves. Tall
reeds along the river bank began to bend their tops, to swing
themselves gently to and from the wind. In the lowlands down from the
cave “will o' the wisps” played tag with “Jack o' the lanterns,”
merrily scampering about in the blackness, reminding her of the
revellers in a famous Brocken scene. Low moans grew out of the havoc,
and voices seemed to speak in unintelligible whispers to the agitated
twigs and leaves. The secrets of the wind were being spread upon the
records of the night; tales of many climes passed through the ears of
From gentle undulations the marshland reeds swept into lower dips,
danced wilder minuets, lashed each other with infatuated glee, mocking
the whistle of the wind with an angry swish of their tall bodies.
Around the cornices of the Inn of the Hawk and Raven scurried the
singing breezes, reluctant to leave a playground so pleasing to the
fancy. Soon the night became a cauldron, a surging, hissing, roaring
receptacle in which were mixing the ingredients of disaster.
Night-birds flapped through the moaning tree-tops, in search of
shelter; reeds were flattened to the earth, bowing to the sovereignty
of the wind; clouds roared with the rumble of a million chariots, and
then the sky and the earth met in one of those savage conflicts that
make all other warfare seem as play.
As Beverly sank back from the crash, she saw him throw his arms
aloft as though inviting the elements to mass themselves and their
energy upon his head. She shrieked involuntarily and he heard the cry
above the carnage. Instantly his face was turned in her direction.
“Help! Help!” she cried. He bounded toward the swishing robes and
blankets, but his impulse had found a rival in the blast. Like a flash
the walls of the guest chamber were whisked away, scuttling off into
the night or back into the depths of the cavern. With the deluge came
the man. From among the stifling robes he snatched her up and bore her
away, she knew not whither.
CHAPTER VI. THE HOME OF THE LION
“May all storms be as pleasant as this one!” she heard someone say,
with a merry laugh. The next instant she was placed soundly upon her
feet. A blinding flash of lightning revealed Baldos, the goat-hunter,
at her side, while a dozen shadowy figures were scrambling to their
feet in all corners of the Hawk and Raven. Someone was clutching her by
the dress at the knees. She did not have to look down to know that it
was Aunt Fanny.
“Goodness!” gasped the princess, and then it was pitch dark again.
The man at her side called out a command in his own language, and then
turned his face close to hers.
“Do not be alarmed. We are quite safe now. The royal bed-chamber has
come to grief, however, I am sorry to say. What a fool I was not to
have foreseen all this! The storm has been brewing since midnight,” he
was saying to her.
“Isn't it awful?” cried Beverly, between a moan a shriek.
“They are trifles after one gets used to them,” he said. “I have
come to be quite at home in the tempest. There are other things much
more annoying, I assure your highness. We shall have lights in a
moment.” Even as he spoke, two or three lanterns began to flicker
“Be quiet, Aunt Fanny; you are not killed at all,” commanded
Beverly, quite firmly.
“De house is suah to blow down. Miss—yo' highness,” groaned the
trusty maidservant. Beverly laughed bravely but nervously with the tall
goat-hunter. He at once set about making his guest comfortable and
secure from the effects of the tempest, which was now at its height.
Her couch of cushions was dragged far back into the cavern and the
rescued blankets, though drenched, again became a screen.
“Do you imagine that I'm going in there while this storm rages?”
Beverly demanded, as the work progressed.
“Are you not afraid of lightning? Most young women are.”
“That's the trouble. I am afraid of it. I'd much rather stay out
here where there is company. You don't mind, do you?”
“Paradise cannot be spurned by one who now feels its warmth for the
first time,” said he, gallantly. “Your fear is my delight. Pray sit
upon our throne. It was once a humble carriage pail of leather, but now
it is exalted. Besides, it is much more comfortable than some of the
gilded chairs we hear about.”
“You are given to irony, I fear,” she said, observing a peculiar
smile on his lips.
“I crave pardon, your highness,” he said, humbly “The heart of the
goat-hunter is more gentle than his wit. I shall not again forget that
you are a princess and I the veriest beggar.”
“I didn't mean to hurt you!” she cried, in contrition, for she was a
very poor example of what a princess is supposed to be.
“There is no wound, your highness,” he quickly said. With a mocking
grace that almost angered her, he dropped to his knee and motioned for
her to be seated. She sat down suddenly, clapping her hands to her ears
and shutting her eyes tightly. The crash of thunder that came at that
instant was the most fearful of all, and it was a full minute before
she dared to lift her lids again. He was standing before her, and there
was genuine compassion in his face. “It's terrible,” he said. “Never
before have I seen such a storm. Have courage, your highness; it can
last but little longer.”
“Goodness!” said the real American girl, for want of something more
“Your servant has crept into your couch, I fear. Shall I sit here at
your feet? Perhaps you may feel a small sense of security if I—”
“Indeed, I want you to sit there,” she cried. He forthwith threw
himself upon the floor of the cave, a graceful, respectful guardian.
Minutes went by without a word from either. The noise of the storm made
it impossible to speak and be heard. Scattered about the cavern were
his outstretched followers, doubtless asleep once more in all this
turmoil. With the first lull in the war of the elements, Beverly gave
utterance to the thought that long had been struggling for release.
“Why do you wear that horrid black patch over your eye?” she asked,
a trifle timidly. He muttered a sharp exclamation and clapped his hand
to his eye. For the first time since the beginning of their strange
acquaintanceship Beverly observed downright confusion in this debonair
knight of the wilds.
“It has—has slipped off—” he stammered, with a guilty grin. His
merry insolence was gone, his composure with it. Beverly laughed with
keen enjoyment over the discomfiture of the shame-faced vagabond.
“You can't fool me,” she exclaimed, shaking her finger at him in the
most unconventional way. “It was intended to be a disguise. There is
absolutely nothing the matter with your eye.”
He was speechless for a moment, recovering himself. Wisdom is
conceived in silence, and he knew this. Vagabond or gentleman, he was a
“The eye is weak, your highness, and I cover it in the daytime to
protect it from the sunlight,” he said, coolly.
“That's all very nice, but it looks to be quite as good as the
other. And what is more, sir, you are not putting the patch over the
same eye that wore it when I first saw you. It was the left eye at
sunset. Does the trouble transfer after dark?”
He broke into an honest laugh and hastily moved the black patch
across his nose to the left eye.
“I was turned around in the darkness, that's all,” he said,
serenely.” It belongs over the left eye, and I am deeply grateful to
you for discovering the error.”
“I don't see any especial reason why you should wear it after dark,
do you? There is no sunlight, I'm sure.”
“I am dazzled, nevertheless,” he retorted.
“Fiddlesticks!” she said. “This is a cave, not a drawing-room.”
“In other words, I am a lout and not a courtier,” he smiled. “Well,
a lout may look at a princess. We have no court etiquette in the hills,
I am sorry to say.”
“That was very unkind, even though you said it most becomingly,” she
protested. “You have called this pail a throne. Let us also imagine
that you are a courtier.”
“You punish me most gently, your highness. I shall not forget my
manners again, believe me.” He seemed thoroughly subdued.
“Then I shall expect you to remove that horrid black thing. It is
positively villainous. You look much better without it.”
“Is it an edict or a compliment?” he asked with such deep gravity
that she flushed.
“It is neither,” she answered. “You don't have to take it off unless
you want to—”
“In either event, it is off. You were right. It serves as a partial
disguise. I have many enemies and the black patch is a very good
“How perfectly lovely,” cried Beverly. “Tell me all about it. I
adore stories about feuds and all that.”
“Your husband is an American. He should be able to keep you well
entertained with blood-and-thunder stories,” said he.
“My hus—What do you—Oh, yes!” gasped Beverly. “To be sure. I
didn't hear you, I guess. That was rather a severe clap of thunder,
“Is that also a command?”
“What do you mean?”
“There was no thunderclap, you know.”
“Oh, wasn't there?” helplessly.
“The storm is quite past. There is still a dash of rain in the air
and the wind may be dying hard, but aside from that I think the noise
is quite subdued.”
“I believe you are right. How sudden it all was.”
“There are several hours between this and dawn, your highness, and
you should try to get a little more sleep. Your cushions are dry and—”
“Very well, since you are so eager to get rid of—” began Beverly,
and then stopped, for it did not sound particularly regal. “I should
have said, you are very thoughtful. You will call me if I sleep late?”
“We shall start early, with your permission. It is forty miles to
Ganlook, and we must be half way there by nightfall.”
“Must we spend another night like this?” cried Beverly, dolefully.
“Alas, I fear you must endure us another night. I am afraid,
however, we shall not find quarters as comfortable as these of the Hawk
“I didn't mean to be ungrateful and—er—snippish,” she said,
wondering if he knew the meaning of the word.
“No?” he said politely, and she knew he did not—whereupon she felt
“You know you speak such excellent English,” she said irrelevantly.
He bowed low. As he straightened his figure, to his amazement, he
beheld an agonizing look of horror on her face; her eyes riveted on the
mouth of the cavern. Then, there came an angrier sound, unlike any that
had gone before in that night of turmoil.
“Look there! Quick!”
The cry of terror from the girl's palsied lips, as she pointed to
something behind him, awoke the mountain man to instant action.
Instinctively, he snatched his long dagger from its sheath and turned
quickly. Not twenty feet from them a huge cat-like beast stood half
crouched on the edge of the darkness, his long tail switching angrily.
The feeble light from the depth of the cave threw the long,
water-soaked visitor into bold relief against the black wall beyond.
Apparently, he was as much surprised as the two who glared at him, as
though frozen to the spot. A snarling whine, a fierce growl, indicated
his fury at finding his shelter—his lair occupied.
“My God! A mountain lion! Ravone! Franz! To me!” he cried hoarsely,
and sprang before her shouting loudly to the sleepers.
A score of men, half awake, grasped their weapons and struggled to
their feet in answer to his call. The lion's gaunt body shot through
the air. In two bounds, he was upon the goat-hunter. Baldos stood
squarely and firmly to meet the rush of the maddened beast, his long
dagger poised for the death-dealing blow.
“Run!” he shouted to her.
Beverly Calhoun had fighting blood in her veins. Utterly unconscious
of her action, at the time, she quickly drew the little silver-handled
revolver from the pocket of her gown. As man, beast and knife came
together, in her excitement she fired recklessly at the combatants
without any thought of the imminent danger of killing her protector.
There was a wild scream of pain from the wounded beast, more pistol
shots, fierce yells from the excited hunters, the rush of feet and then
the terrified and almost frantic girl staggered and fell against the
rocky wall. Her wide gray eyes were fastened upon the writhing lion and
the smoking pistol was tightly clutched in her hand.
It had all occurred in such an incredible short space of time that
she could not yet realize what had happened.
Her heart and brain seemed paralyzed, her limbs stiff and immovable.
Like the dizzy whirl of a kaleidoscope, the picture before her resolved
itself into shape.
The beast was gasping his last upon the rocky floor, the hilt of the
goat hunter's dagger protruding from his side. Baldos, supported by two
of his men, stood above the savage victim, his legs covered with blood.
The cave was full of smoke and the smell of powder. Out of the haze she
began to see the light of understanding. Baldos alone was injured. He
had stood between her and the rush of the lion, and he had saved her,
at a cost she knew not how great.
“Oh, the blood!” she cried hoarsely. “Is it—is it—are you badly
hurt?” She was at his side, the pistol falling from her nervous
“Don't come near me; I'm all right,” he cried quickly.
“Take care—your dress—”
“Oh, I'm so glad to hear you speak! Never mind the dress! You are
torn to pieces! You must be frightfully hurt. Oh, isn't it
terrible—horrible! Aunt Fanny! Come here this minute!”
Forgetting the beast and throwing off the paralysis of fear, she
pushed one of the men away and grasped the arm of the injured man. He
winced perceptibly and she felt something warm and sticky on her hands.
She knew it was blood, but it was not in her to shrink at a moment like
“Your arm, too!” she gasped. He smiled, although his face was white
with pain. “How brave you were! You might have been—I'll never forget
it—never! Don't stand there, Aunt Fanny! Quick! Get those cushions for
him. He's hurt.”
“Good Lawd!” was all the old woman could say, but she obeyed her
“It was easier than it looked, your highness,” murmured Baldos.
“Luck was with me. The knife went to his heart. I am merely scratched.
His leap was short, but he caught me above the knees with his claws.
Alas, your highness, these trousers of mine were bad enough before, but
now they are in shreds. What patching I shall have to do! And you may
well imagine we are short of thread and needles and thimbles—”
“Don't jest, for heaven's sake! Don't talk like that. Here! Lie down
upon these cushions and—”
“Never! Desecrate the couch of Graustark's ruler? I, the poor
goat-hunter? I'll use the lion for a pillow and the rock for an
operating table. In ten minutes my men can have these scratches dressed
and bound—in fact, there is a surgical student among them, poor
fellow. I think I am his first patient. Ravone, attend me.”
He threw himself upon the ground and calmly placed his head upon the
body of the animal.
“I insist upon your taking these cushions,” cried Beverly.
“And I decline irrevocably.” She stared at him in positive anger.
“Trust Ravone to dress these trifling wounds, your highness. He may not
be as gentle, but he is as firm as any princess in all the world.”
“But your arm?” she cried. “Didn't you say it was your legs? Your
arm is covered with blood, too. Oh, dear me, I'm afraid you are
“A stray bullet from one of my men struck me there, I think. You
know there was but little time for aiming—?”
“Wait! Let me think a minute! Good heavens!” she exclaimed with a
start. Her eyes were suddenly filled with tears and there was a break
in her voice. “I shot you! Don't deny it—don't! It is the right arm,
and your men could not have hit it from where they stood. Oh, oh, oh!”
Baldos smiled as he bared his arm. “Your aim was good,” he admitted.
“Had not my knife already been in the lion's heart, your bullet would
have gone there. It is my misfortune that my arm was in the way.
Besides, your highness, it has only cut through the skin—and a little
below, perhaps. It will be well in a day or two, I am sure you will
find your bullet in the carcass of our lamented friend, the probable
owner of this place.”
Ravone, a hungry-looking youth, took charge of the wounded leader,
while her highness retreated to the farthest corner of the cavern.
There she sat and trembled while the wounds were being dressed. Aunt
Fanny bustled back and forth, first unceremoniously pushing her way
through the circle of men to take observations, and then reporting to
the impatient girl. The storm had passed and the night was still,
except for the rush of the river; raindrops fell now and then from the
trees, glistening like diamonds as they touched the light from the
cavern's mouth. It was all very dreary, uncanny and oppressive to poor
Beverly. Now and then she caught herself sobbing, more out of shame and
humiliation than in sadness, for had she not shot the man who stepped
between her and death? What must he think of her?
“He says yo' all 'd betteh go to baid, Miss Bev—yo' highness,” said
Aunt Fanny after one of her trips.
“Oh, he does, does he?” sniffed Beverly. “I'll go to bed when I
please. Tell him so. No, no—don't do it, Aunt Fanny! Tell him I'll go
to bed when I'm sure he is quite comfortable, not before.”
“But he's jes' a goat puncheh er a—”
“He's a man, if there ever was one. Don't let me hear you call him a
goat puncher again. How are his legs?” Aunt Fanny was almost stunned by
this amazing question from her ever-decorous mistress. “Why don't you
answer? Will they have to be cut off? Didn't you see them?”
“Fo' de Lawd's sake, missy, co'se Ah did, but yo' all kindeh
susprise me. Dey's p'etty bad skun up, missy; de hide's peeled up
consid'ble. But hit ain' dang'ous,—no, ma'am. Jes' skun, 'at's all.”
“And his arm—where I shot him?”
“Puffec'ly triflin', ma'am,—yo' highness. Cobwebs 'd stop de
bleedin' an' Ah tole 'em so, but 'at felleh couldn' un'stan' me. Misteh
what's-his-names he says something to de docteh, an' den dey goes afteh
de cobwebs, suah 'nough. 'Tain' bleedin' no mo', missy. He's mostes'
neah doin' we'y fine. Co'se, he cain' walk fo' sev'l days wiv dem laigs
o' his'n, but—”
“Then, in heaven's name, how are we to get to Edelweiss?”
“He c'n ride, cain't he? Wha's to hindeh him?”
“Quite right. He shall ride inside the coach. Go and see if I can do
anything for him.”
Aunt Fanny returned in a few minutes.
“He says yo'll do him a great favoh if yo' jes' go to baid. He sends
his 'spects an' hopes yo' slumbeh won' be distubbed ag'in.”
“He's a perfect brute!” exclaimed Beverly, but she went over and
crawled under the blankets and among the cushions the wounded man had
CHAPTER VII. SOME FACTS AND FANCIES
There was a soft, warm, yellow glow to the world when Beverly
Calhoun next looked upon it. The sun from his throne in the mountain
tops was smiling down upon the valley the night had ravaged while he
was on the other side of the earth. The leaves of the trees were a
softer green, the white of the rocks and the yellow of the road were of
a gentler tint; the brown and green reeds were proudly erect once more.
The stirring of the mountain men had awakened Aunt Fanny, and she in
turn called her mistress from the surprisingly peaceful slumber into
which perfect health had sent her not so many hours before. At the
entrance to the improvised bedchamber stood buckets of water from the
“We have very thoughtful chambermaids,” remarked Beverly while Aunt
Fanny was putting her hair into presentable shape. “And an energetic
cook,” she added as the odor of broiled meat came to her nostrils.
“Ah cain' see nothin' o' dat beastes, Miss Beverly—an'—Ah—Ah got
mah suspicions,” said Aunt Fanny, with sepulchral despair in her voice.
“They've thrown the awful thing into the river,” concluded Beverly.
“Dey's cookin' hit!” said Aunt Fanny solemnly.
“Good heaven, no!” cried Beverly. “Go and see, this minute. I
wouldn't eat that catlike thing for the whole world.” Aunt Fanny came
back a few minutes later with the assurance that they were roasting
goat meat. The skin of the midnight visitor was stretched upon the
ground not far away.
“And how is he?” asked Beverly, jamming a hat pin through a helpless
bunch of violets.
“He's ve'y 'spectably skun, yo' highness.”
“I don't mean the animal, stupid.”
“Yo' mean 'at Misteh Goat man? He's settin' up an' chattin' as if
nothin' happened. He says to me 'at we staht on ouah way jes' as soon
as yo' all eats yo' b'eakfus'. De bosses is hitched up an'—”
“Has everybody else eaten? Am I the only one that hasn't? “cried
“'Ceptin' me, yo' highness. Ah'm as hungry as a poah man's dawg,
“And he is being kept from the hospital because I am a lazy,
good-for-nothing little—Come on, Aunt Fanny; we haven't a minute to
spare. If he looks very ill, we do without breakfast.”
But Baldos was the most cheerful man in the party. He was sitting
with his back against a tree, his right arm in a sling of woven reeds,
his black patch set upon the proper eye.
“You will pardon me for not rising,” he said cheerily, “but, your
highness, I am much too awkward this morning to act as befitting a
courtier in the presence of his sovereign. You have slept well?”
“Too well, I fear. So well, in fact, that you have suffered for it.
Can't we start at once?” She was debating within herself whether it
would be quite good form to shake hands with the reclining hero. In the
glare of the broad daylight he and his followers looked more ragged and
famished than before, but they also appeared more picturesquely
“When you have eaten of our humble fare, your highness,—the last
meal at the Hawk and Raven.”
“But I'm not a bit hungry.”
“It is very considerate of you, but equally unreasonable. You must
eat before we start.”
“I can't bear the thought of your suffering when we should be
hurrying to a hospital and competent surgeons.” He laughed gaily. “Oh,
you needn't laugh. I know it hurts. You say we cannot reach Ganlook
before to-morrow? Well, we can't stop here a minute longer than we—Oh,
thank you!” A ragged servitor had placed a rude bowl of meat and some
fruit before her.
“Sit down here, your highness, and prepare yourself for a long fast.
We may go until nightfall without food. The game is scarce and we dare
not venture far into the hills.”
Beverly sat at his feet and daintily began the operation of picking
a bone with her pretty fingers teeth. “I am sorry we have no knives and
forks” he apologized.
“I don't mind"' said she. “I wish you would remove that black
“Alas, I must resume the hated disguise. A chance enemy might
“Your—your clothes have been mended,” she remarked with a furtive
glance at his long legs. The trousers had been rudely sewed up and no
bandages were visible. “Are you—your legs terribly hurt???”
“They are badly scratched, but not seriously. The bandages are
skilfully placed,” he added, seeing her look of doubt. “Ravone is a
“Well, I'll hurry,” she said, blushing deeply. Goat-hunter though he
was and she a princess, his eyes gleamed with the joy of her beauty and
his heart thumped with a most unruly admiration. “You were very, very
brave last night,” she said at last—and her rescuer smiled
She was not long in finishing the rude but wholesome meal, and then
announced her readiness to be on the way. With the authority of a
genuine princess she commanded him to ride inside the coach, gave
incomprehensible directions to the driver and to the escort, and would
listen to none of his protestations. When the clumsy vehicle was again
in the highway and bumping over the ridges of flint, the goat-hunter
was beside his princess on the rear seat, his feet upon the opposite
cushions near Aunt Fanny, a well-arranged bridge of boxes and bags
providing support for his long legs.
“We want to go to a hospital,” Beverly had said to the driver, very
much as she might have spoken had she been in Washington. She was
standing bravely beside the forewheel, her face flushed and eager.
Baldos, from his serene position on the cushions, watched her with
kindling eyes. The grizzled driver grinned and shook his head
despairingly. “Oh, pshaw! You don't understand, do you?
Hospital—h-o-s-p-i-t-a-l,” she spelt it out for him, and still he
shook his head. Others in the motley retinue were smiling broadly.
“Speak to him in your own language, your highness, and he will be
sure to understand,” ventured the patient.
“I am speaking in my—I mean, I prefer to speak in English. Please
tell him to go to a hospital,” she said confusedly. Baldos gave a few
jovial instructions, and then the raggedest courtier of them all handed
Beverly into the carriage with a grace that amazed her.
“You are the most remarkable goat-hunters I have ever seen,” she
remarked in sincere wonder.
“And you speak the most perfect English I've ever heard,” he
“Oh, do you really think so? Miss Grimes used to say I was hopeless.
You know I had a—a tutor,” she hastily explained. “Don't you think it
strange we've met no Axphain soldiers?” she went on, changing the
“We are not yet out of the woods,” he said.
“That was a purely American aphorism,” she cried, looking at him
intently. “Where did you learn all your English?”
“I had a tutor,” he answered easily.
“You are a very odd person,” she sighed. “I don't believe that you
are a goat-hunter at all.”
“If I were not a goat-hunter I should have starved long ago,” he
said. “Why do you doubt me?”
“Simply because you treat me one moment as if I were a princess, and
the next as if I were a child. Humble goat-hunters do not forget their
station in life.”
“I have much to learn of the deference due to queens,” he said.
“That's just like 'The Mikado' or 'Pinafore,'“ she exclaimed.” I
believe you are a comic-opera brigand or a pirate chieftain, after
“I am a lowly outcast,” he smiled.
“Well, I've decided to take you into Edelweiss and—”
“Pardon me, your highness,” he said firmly, “That cannot be. I shall
not go to Edelweiss.”
“But I command you—”
“It's very kind of you, but I cannot enter a hospital—not even at
Ganlook. I may as well confess that I am a hunted man and that the
instructions are to take me dead or alive.”
“Impossible!” she gasped, involuntarily shrinking from him.
“I have wronged no man, yet I am being hunted down as though I were
a beast,” he said, his face turning haggard for the moment. “The hills
of Graustark, the plateaus of Axphain and the valleys of Dawsbergen are
alive with men who are bent on ending my unhappy but inconvenient
existence. It would be suicide for me to enter any one of your towns or
cities. Even you could not protect me, I fear,”
“This sounds like a dream. Oh, dear me, you don't look like a
hardened criminal,” she cried.
“I am the humble leader of a faithful band who will die with me when
the time comes. We are not criminals, your highness. In return for what
service I may have performed for you, I implore you to question me no
further. Let me be your slave up to the walls of Ganlook, and then you
may forget Baldos, the goat-hunter.”
“I never can forget you,” she cried, touching his injured arm
gently. “Will you forget the one who gave you this wound?”
“It is a very gentle wound, and I love it so that I pray it may
never heal.” She looked away suddenly.
“Tell me one thing,” she said, a mist coming over her eyes. “You say
they are hunting you to the death. Then—then your fault must be a
grievous one. Have you—have you killed a man?” she added hastily. He
was silent for a long time.
“I fear I have killed more than one man,” he said in low tones.
Again she shrank into the corner of the coach. “History says that your
father was a brave soldier and fought in many battles,” he went on.
“Yes,” she said, thinking of Major George Calhoun.
“He killed men then, perhaps, as I have killed them,” he said.
“Oh, my father never killed a man!” cried Beverly, in devout horror.
“Yet Graustark reveres his mighty prowess on the field of battle,”
said he, half laconically.
“Oh,” she murmured, remembering that she was now the daughter of
Yetive's father. “I see. You are not a—a—a mere murderer, then?”
“No. I have been a soldier—that is all.”
“Thank heaven!” she murmured, and was no longer afraid of him.
“Would—would a pardon be of any especial benefit to you?” she asked,
wondering how far her influence might go with the Princess Yetive.
“It is beyond your power to help me,” he said gravely. She was
silent, but it was the silence of deep reflection. “Your highness left
the castle ten days ago,” he said, dismissing himself as a subject for
conversation. “Have you kept in close communication with Edelweiss
during that time?”
“I know nothing of what is going on there,” she said, quite
truthfully. She only knew that she had sent a message to the Princess
Yetive, apprising her of her arrival In St. Petersburg and of her
intention to leave soon for the Graustark capital.
“Then you do not know that Mr. Lorry is still on the Dawsbergen
frontier in conference with representatives from Serros. He may not
return for a week, so Colonel Quinnox brings back word.”
“It's news to me,” murmured Beverly.
“You do not seem to be alarmed,” he ventured. “Yet I fancy it is not
a dangerous mission, although Prince Gabriel is ready to battle at a
“I have the utmost confidence in Mr. Lorry,” said Beverly, with
“Baron Dangloss, your minister of police, is in these mountains
watching the operations of Axphain scouts and spies.”
“Is he? You are very well posted, it seems.”
“Moreover, the Axphainians are planning to attack Ganlook upon the
first signal from their ruler. I do not wish to alarm your highness,
but we may as well expect trouble before we come to the Ganlook gates
You are known to be in the pass, and I am certain an effort will be
made to take possession of your person.”
“They wouldn't dare!” she exclaimed.” Uncle Sam would annihilate
them In a week.”
“Uncle Sam? Is he related to your Aunt Fanny? I'm afraid he could do
but little against Volga's fighting men,” he said, with a smile.
“They'd soon find out who Uncle Sam is if they touch me,” she
threatened grandly. He seemed puzzled, but was too polite to press her
for explanations. “But, he is a long way off and couldn't do much if we
were suddenly attacked from ambush, could he? What would they do to me
if I were taken, as you suggest?” she was more concerned than she
appeared to be.
“With you in their hands, Graustark would be utterly helpless. Volga
could demand anything she liked, and your ministry would be forced to
“I really think it would be a capital joke on the Princess Volga,”
mused Beverly reflectively. He did not know what she meant, but
regarded her soft smile as the clear title to the serenity of a
She sank back and gave herself over to the complications that were
likely to grow out of her involuntary deception. The one thing which
worried her more than all others was the fear that Yetive might not be
in Edelweiss. According to all reports, she had lately been in St.
Petersburg and the mere fact that she was supposed to be traveling by
coach was sufficient proof that she was not at her capital. Then there
was, of course, the possibility of trouble on the road with the Axphain
scouts, but Beverly enjoyed the optimism of youth and civilization.
Baldos, the goat-hunter, was dreamily thinking of the beautiful
young woman at his side and of the queer freak Fortune had played in
bringing them together. As he studied her face he could not but lament
that marriage, at least, established a barrier between her and the
advances his bold heart might otherwise be willing to risk. His black
hair straggled down over his forehead and his dark eyes—the patch had
been surreptitiously lifted—were unusually pensive.
“It is strange that you live in Graustark and have not seen its
princess—before,” she said, laying groundwork for enquiry concerning
the acts and whereabouts of the real princess.
“May it please your highness, I have not lived long in Graustark.
Besides, it is said that half the people of Ganlook have never looked
upon your face.”
“I'm not surprised at that. The proportion is much smaller than I
imagined. I have not visited Ganlook, strange as it may seem to you.”
“One of my company fell in with some of your guards from the Ganlook
garrison day before yesterday. He learned that you were to reach that
city within forty-eight hours. A large detachment of men has been sent
to meet you at Labbot.”
“Oh, indeed,” said Beverly, very much interested.
“They must have been misinformed as to your route—or else your
Russian escort decided to take you through by the lower and more
hazardous way. It was our luck that you came by the wrong road.
Otherwise we should not have met each other—and the lion,” he said,
“Where is Labbot?” asked she, intent upon the one subject uppermost
in her mind.
“In the mountains many leagues north of this pass. Had you taken
that route instead of this, you would by this time have left Labbot for
the town of Erros, a half-day's journey from Ganlook. Instead of
vagabonds, your escort would have been made up of loyal soldiers,
well-fed, well-clad, and well satisfied with themselves, at least.”
“But no braver, no truer than my soldiers of fortune,” she said
earnestly. “By the way, are you informed as to the state of affairs in
“Scarcely as well as your highness must be,” he replied.
“The young prince—what's his name?” she paused, looking to him for
“Yes, that's it. What has become of him? I am terribly interested in
“He is a fugitive, they say.”
“They haven't captured him, then? Good! I am so glad.”
Baldos exhibited little or no interest in the fresh topic.
“It is strange you should have forgotten his name,” he said wearily.
“Oh, I do so many ridiculous things!” complained Beverly,
remembering who she was supposed to be. “I have never seen him, you
know,” she added.
“It is not strange, your highness. He was educated in England and
had seen but little of his own country when he was called to the throne
two years ago. You remember, of course, that his mother was an
Englishwoman—Lady Ida Falconer.”
“I—I think I have heard some of his history—a very little, to be
sure,” she explained lamely.
“Prince Gabriel, his half brother, is the son of Prince Louis the
Third by his first wife, who was a Polish countess. After her death,
when Gabriel was two years old, the prince married Lady Ida. Dantan is
their son. He has a sister—Candace, who is but nineteen years of age.”
“I am ashamed to confess that you know so much more about my
neighbors than I,” she said.
“I lived in Dawsbergen for a little while, and was ever interested
in the doings of royalty. That is a poor man's privilege, you know.”
“Prince Gabriel must be a terrible man,” cried Beverly, her heart
swelling with tender thoughts of the exiled Dantan and his little
“You have cause to know,” said he shortly, and she was perplexed
until she recalled the stories of Gabriel's misdemeanors at the court
“Is Prince Dantan as handsome as they say he is?” she asked.
“It is entirely a matter of opinion,” he replied. “I, for one, do
not consider him at all prepossessing.”
The day went on, fatiguing, distressing in its length and its
happenings. Progress was necessarily slow, the perils of the road
increasing as the little cavalcade wound deeper and deeper into the
wilderness. There were times when the coach fairly crawled along the
edge of a precipice, a proceeding so hazardous that Beverly shuddered
as if in a chill. Aunt Fanny slept serenely most of the time, and
Baldos took to dreaming with his eyes wide open. Contrary to her
expectations, the Axphainians did not appear, and if there were robbers
in the hills they thought better than to attack the valorous-looking
party. It dawned upon her finally that the Axphainians were guarding
the upper route and not the one over which she was traveling. Yetive
doubtless was approaching Ganlook over the northern pass, provided the
enemy had not been encountered before Labbot was reached. Beverly soon
found herself fearing for the safety of the princess, a fear which at
last became almost unendurable.
Near nightfall they came upon three Graustark shepherds and learned
that Ganlook could not be reached before the next afternoon. The tired,
hungry travelers spent the night in a snug little valley through which
a rivulet bounded onward to the river below. The supper was a scant
one, the foragers having poor luck in the hunt for food. Daybreak saw
them on their way once more. Hunger and dread had worn down Beverly's
supply of good spirits; she was having difficulty in keeping the
haggard, distressed look from her face. Her tender, hopeful eyes were
not so bold or so merry as on the day before; cheerfulness cost her an
effort, but she managed to keep it fairly alive. Her escort, wretched
and half-starved, never forgot the deference due to their charge, but
strode steadily on with the doggedness of martyrs. At times she was
impelled to disclose her true identity, but discretion told her that
deception was her best safeguard.
Late in the afternoon of the second day the front axle of the coach
snapped in two, and a tedious delay of two hours ensued. Baldos was
strangely silent and subdued. It was not until the misfortune came that
Beverly observed the flushed condition of his face. Involuntarily and
with the compassion of a true woman she touched his hand and brow. They
were burning-hot. The wounded man was in a high fever. He laughed at
her fears and scoffed at the prospect of blood-poisoning and the
hundred other possibilities that suggested themselves to her anxious
“We are close to Ganlook,” he said, with the setting of the sun.
“Soon you may be relieved of your tiresome, cheerless company, your
“You are going to a physician,” she said, resolutely, alive and
active once more, now that the worst part of the journey was coming to
an end. “Tell that man to drive in a gallop all the rest of the way!”
CHAPTER VIII. THROUGH THE GANLOOK
By this time they were passing the queer little huts that marked the
outskirts of a habitable community. These were the homes of shepherds,
hunters and others whose vocations related especially to the mountains.
Farther on there were signs of farming interests; the homes became more
numerous and more pretentious in appearance. The rock-lined gorge
broadened into a fertile valley; the road was smooth and level, a
condition which afforded relief to the travelers. Ravone had once more
dressed the wounds inflicted by the lion; but he was unable to provide
anything to subdue the fever. Baldos was undeniably ill. Beverly,
between her exclamations of joy and relief at being in sight of
Ganlook, was profuse in her expressions of concern for the hero of the
Hawk and Raven. The feverish gleam in his dark eyes and the pain that
marked his face touched her deeply. Suffering softened his lean,
sun-browned features, obliterating the mocking lines that had impressed
her so unfavorably at the outset. She was saying to herself that he was
handsome after a most unusual cast; it was an unforgetable face.
“Your highness,” he said earnestly, after she had looked long and
anxiously at his half-closed eyes, “we are within an hour of Ganlook.
It will be dark before we reach the gates, I know, but you have nothing
to fear during the rest of the trip. Franz shall drive you to the
sentry post and turn over the horses to your own men. My friends and I
must leave you at the end of the mountain road. We are—”
“Ridiculous!” she cried. “I'll not permit it! You must go to a
“If I enter the Ganlook gates it will be the same as entering the
gates of death,” he protested.
“Nonsense! You have a fever or you wouldn't talk like that. I can
promise you absolute security.”
“You do not understand, your highness.”
“Nevertheless, you are going to a hospital,” she firmly said. “You
would die out here in the wilds, so what are the odds either way? Aunt
Fanny, will you be careful? Don't you know that the least
movement of those bags hurts him?”
“Please, do not mind me, your highness. I am doing very well,” he
The coach brought up in front of a roadside inn. While some of the
men were watering the horses others gathered about its open window. A
conversation in a tongue utterly incomprehensible to Beverly took place
between Baldos and his followers. The latter seemed to be disturbed
about something, and there was no mistaking the solicitous air with
which they regarded their leader. The pseudo-princess was patient as
long as possible and then broke into the discussion.
“What do they want?” she demanded in English.
“They are asking for instructions,” he answered.
“Instruct them to do as I bid,” she said. “Tell them to hurry along
and get you a doctor; that's all.”
Evidently his friends were of the same opinion, for after a long
harangue in which he was obdurate to the last, they left the carriage
and he sank back with a groan of dejection.
“What is it?” she anxiously demanded.
“They also insist that I shall go to a surgeon,” he said hopelessly.
His eyes were moist and he could not meet her gaze. She was full of
“They have advised me to put myself under your protection, shameless
as that may seem to a man. You and you alone have the power to protect
me if I pass beyond the walls of Ganlook.”
“I?” she cried, all a-flutter.
“I could not thrust my head into the jaws of death unless the
princess of Graustark were there to stay their fury. Your royal hand
alone can turn aside the inevitable. Alas, I am helpless and know not
what to do.”
Beverly Calhoun sat very straight and silent beside the misguided
Baldos. After all, it was not within her power to protect him. She was
not the princess and she had absolutely no influence in Ganlook. The
authorities there could not be deceived as had been these ignorant men
of the hills. If she led him into the city it was decidedly probable
that she might be taking him to his death. She only could petition, not
command. Once at Yetive's side she was confident she could save the man
who had done so much for her, but Ganlook was many miles from
Edelweiss, and there was no assurance that intervention could be
obtained in time. On the other hand, if he went back to the hills he
was likely to die of the poisonous fever. Beverly was in a most unhappy
state of mind. If she confessed to him that she was not the princess,
he would refuse to enter the gates of Ganlook, and be perfectly
justified in doing so.
“But if I should fail?” she asked, at last, a shiver rushing over
her and leaving her cold with dread.
“You are the only hope, your highness. You had better say farewell
to Baldos and let him again seek the friendly valley,” said he wearily.
“We can go no farther. The soldiers must be near, your highness. It
means capture if we go on. I cannot expose my friends to the dangers.
Let me be put down here, and do you drive on to safety. I shall fare
much better than you think, for I am young and strong and—”
“No! I'll risk it,” she cried. “You must go into the city. Tell them
so and say that I will protect you with my own life and honor.”
Fever made him submissive; her eyes gave him confidence; her voice
soothed his fears, if he possessed them. Leaning from the window, he
called his men together. Beverly looked on in wonder as these strange
men bade farewell to their leader. Many of them were weeping, and most
of them kissed his hand. There were broken sentences, tear-choked
promises, anxious inquiries, and the parting was over.
“Where are they going?” Beverly whispered, as they moved away in the
“Back into the mountains to starve, poor fellows. God be kind to
them, God be good to them,” he half sobbed, his chin dropping to his
breast. He was trembling like a leaf.
“Starve?” she whispered. “Have they no money?”
“We are penniless,” came in muffled tones from the stricken leader.
Beverly leaned from the window and called to the departing ones.
Ravone and one other reluctantly approached. Without a word she opened
a small traveling bag and drew forth a heavy purse. This she pressed
into the hand of the student. It was filled with Graustark gavvos, for
which she had exchanged American gold in Russia.
“God be with you,” she fervently cried. He kissed her hand, and the
two stood aside to let the coach roll on into the dusky shadows that
separated them from the gates of Ganlook, old Franz still driving—the
only one of the company left to serve his leader to the very end.
“Well, we have left them,” muttered Baldos, as though to himself. “I
may never see them again—never see them again. God, how true they have
“I shall send for them the moment I get to Ganlook and I'll promise
pardons for them all,” she cried rashly, in her compassion.
“No!” he exclaimed fiercely. “You are not to disturb them. Better
that they should starve.”
Beverly was sufficiently subdued. As they drew nearer the city gates
her heart began to fail her. This man's life was in her weak, incapable
hands and the time was nearing when she must stand between him and
“Where are these vaunted soldiers of yours?” he suddenly asked,
infinite irony in his voice.
“My soldiers?” she said faintly.
“Isn't it rather unusual that, in time of trouble and uncertainty,
we should be able to approach within a mile of one of your most
important cities without even so much as seeing a soldier of
She felt that he was scoffing, but it mattered little to her.
“It is a bit odd, isn't it?” she agreed.
“Worse than that, your highness.”
“I shall speak to Dangloss about it,” she said serenely, and he
looked up in new surprise. Truly, she was an extraordinary princess.
Fully three-quarters of an hour passed before the coach was checked.
Beverly, looking from the windows, had seem the lighted windows of
cottages growing closer and closer together. The barking of roadside
dogs was the only sound that could be heard above the rattle of the
wheels. It was too dark inside the coach to see the face of the man
beside her, but something told her that he was staring intently into
the night, alert and anxious. The responsibility of her position
swooped down upon her like an avalanche as she thought of what the next
few minutes were to bring forth. It was the sudden stopping of the
coach and the sharp commands from the outside that told her probation
was at an end. She could no longer speculate; it was high time to act.
“The outpost,” came from Baldos, in strained tones.
“Perhaps they won't know us—you, I mean,” she whispered.
“Baron Dangloss knows everybody,” he replied bitterly.
“What a horrid old busy-body he—” she started to say, but thought
better of it.
A couple of lanterns flashed at the window, almost blinding her.
Aunt Fanny groaned audibly, but the figure of Baldos seemed to stiffen
with defiance. Uniformed men peered into the interior with more
rudeness and curiosity than seemed respectful to a princess, to say the
least. They saw a pretty, pleading face, with wide gray eyes and parted
lips, but they did not bow in humble submission as Baldos had expected.
One of the men, evidently in command, addressed Beverly in rough but
polite tones. It was a question that he asked, she knew, but she could
not answer him, for she could not understand him.
“What do you want?” she put in English, with a creditable display of
“He does not speak English, your highness,” volunteered Baldos, in a
voice so well disguised that it startled her. The officer was staring
blankly at her.
“Every officer in my army should and must learn to speak English,”
she said, at her wits' end, “I decline to be questioned by the fellow.
Will you talk to him in my stead?”
“I, your highness?” he cried in dismay.
“Yes. Tell him who we are and ask where the hospital is,” she
murmured, sinking back with the air of a queen, but with the inward
feeling that all was lost.
“But I don't speak your language well,” he protested.
“You speak it beautifully,” she said. Baldos leaned forward
painfully and spoke to the officer in the Graustark tongue.
“Don't you know your princess?” he demanded, a trifle harshly. The
man's eyes flew wide open in an instant and his jaw dropped.
“Th—the princess?” he gasped.
“Don't stare like that, sir. Direct us to the main gate at once, or
you will have cause to regret your slowness.”
“But the princess was—is coming by the northern pass,” mumbled the
man. “The guard has gone out to meet her and—” Baldos cut him off
shortly with the information that the princess, as he could see, had
come by the lower pass and that she was eager to reach a resting-place
at once. The convincing tone of the speaker and the regal indifference
of the lady had full effect upon the officer, who had never seen her
highness. He fell back with a deep obeisance, and gave a few bewildered
commands to his men. The coach moved off, attended by a party of
foot-soldiers, and Beverly breathed her first sigh of relief.
“You did it beautifully,” she whispered to Baldos, and he was
considerably puzzled by the ardor of her praise.” Where are we going
now? “she asked.
“Into the city, your highness,” he answered. It was beginning to
dawn upon him that she was amazingly ignorant and inconsequential for
one who enjoyed the right to command these common soldiers. Her old
trepidation returned with this brief answer. Something told her that he
was beginning to mistrust her at last. After all, it meant everything
to him and so little to her.
When the coach halted before the city gates she was in a dire state
of unhappiness. In the darkness she could feel the reproachful eyes of
old Aunt Fanny searching for her abandoned conscience.
“Ask if Baron Dangloss is in Ganlook, and, if he is, command them to
take me to him immediately,” she whispered to Baldos, a sudden
inspiration seizing her. She would lay the whole matter before the
great chief of police, and trust to fortune. Her hand fell impulsively
upon his and, to her amazement, it was as cold as ice. “What is the
matter?” she cried in alarm.
“You trusted me in the wilds, your highness,” he said tensely; “I am
trusting you now.” Before she could reply the officer in charge of the
Ganlook gates appeared at the coach window. There were lights on all
sides. Her heart sank like lead. It would be a miracle if she passed
the gates unrecognized.
“I must see Baron Dangloss at once,” she cried in English, utterly
disdaining her instructions to Baldos.
“The baron is engaged at present and can see no one,” responded the
good-looking young officer in broken English.
“Where is he?” she demanded nervously.
“He is at the home of Colonel Goaz, the commandant. What is your
business with him?”
“It is with him and not with you, sir,” she said, imperious once
more. “Conduct me to him immediately.”
“You cannot enter the gates unless you—”
“Insolence!” exclaimed Baldos. “Is this the way, sir, in which you
address the princess? Make way for her.”
“The princess!” gasped the officer. Then a peculiar smile overspread
his face. He had served three years in the Castle Guard at Edelweiss!
There was a long pause fraught with disaster for Beverly. “Yes, perhaps
it is just as well that we conduct her to Baron Dangloss,” he said at
last. The deep meaning in his voice appealed only to the unhappy girl.
“There shall be no further delay, your highness!” he added
mockingly. A moment later the gates swung open and they passed through.
Beverly alone knew that they were going to Baron Dangloss under heavy
guard, virtually as prisoners. The man knew her to be an impostor and
was doing only his duty.
There were smiles of derision on the faces of the soldiers when
Beverly swept proudly between the files and up the steps leading to the
commandant's door, but there were no audible remarks. Baldos followed,
walking painfully but defiantly, and Aunt Fanny came last with the
handbag. The guards grinned broadly as the corpulent negress waddled up
the steps. The young officer and two men entered the door with the
wayfarers, who were ordered to halt in the hallway.
“Will your highness come with me?” said the officer, returning to
the hall after a short absence. There was unmistakable derision in his
voice and palpable insolence in his manner. Beverly flushed angrily.
“Baron Dangloss is very curious to see you,” he added, with a
smile. Nevertheless, he shrank a bit beneath the cold gleam in the eyes
of the impostor.
“You will remain here,” she said, turning to Baldos and the negress.
“And you will have nothing whatever to say to this very important young
man.” The “important young man” actually chuckled.
“Follow me, your most royal highness,” he said, preceding her
through the door that opened into the office of the commandant. Baldos
glared after them in angry amazement.
“Young man, some day and soon you will be a much wiser
soldier and, in the ranks,” said Beverly hotly. The smile instantly
receded from the insolent fellow's face, for there was a world of
prophecy in the way she said it. Somehow, he was in a much more
respectful humor when he returned to the hall and stood in the presence
of the tall, flushed stranger with the ragged uniform.
A short, fierce little man in the picturesque uniform of a Graustark
officer arose as Beverly entered the office. His short beard bristled
as though it were concealing a smile, but his manner was polite, even
deferential. She advanced fearlessly toward him, a wayward smile
struggling into her face.
“I daresay you know I am not the princess,” she said composedly.
Every vestige of fear was gone now that she had reached the line of
battle. The doughty baron looked somewhat surprised at this frank way
of opening the interview.
“I am quite well aware of it,” he said politely.
“They say you know everyone, Baron Dangloss,” she boldly said.
“Pray, who am I?”
The powerful official looked at the smiling face for a moment, his
bushy eyebrows contracting ever so slightly. There was a shameless
streak of dust across her cheek, but there was also a dimple there that
appealed to the grim old man. His eyes twinkled as he replied, with
“You are Miss Beverly Calhoun, of Washington.”
CHAPTER IX. THE REDOUBTABLE DANGLOSS
Beverly's eyes showed her astonishment. Baron Dangloss courteously
placed a chair for her and asked her to be seated.
“We were expecting you, Miss Calhoun,” he explained. “Her royal
highness left St. Petersburg but a few hours after your departure,
having unfortunately missed you.”
“You don't mean to say that the princess tried to find me in St.
Petersburg?” cried Beverly, in wonder and delight.
“That was one of the purposes of her visit,” said he brusquely.
“Oh, how jolly!” cried she, her gray eyes sparkling. The grim old
captain was startled for the smallest fraction of a minute, but at once
fell to admiring the fresh, eager face of the visitor.
“The public at large is under the impression that she visited the
Czar on matters of importance,” he said, with a condescending smile.
“And it really was of no importance at all, that's what you mean?”
she smiled back securely.
“Your message informing her highness of your presence in St.
Petersburg had no sooner arrived than she set forth to meet you in that
city, much against the advice of her counsellors. I will admit that she
had other business there but it could have waited. You see, Miss
Calhoun, it was a great risk at this particular time. Misfortune means
disaster now. But Providence was her friend. She arrived safely in
Ganlook not an hour since.”
“Really? Oh, Baron Dangloss, where is she?” excitedly cried the
“For the night she is stopping with the Countess Rallowitz. A force
of men, but not those whom you met at the gates, has just been
dispatched at her command to search for you in the lower pass. You took
the most dangerous road, Miss Calhoun, and I am amazed that you came
through in safety.”
“The Russians chose the lower pass, I know not why. Of course, I was
quite ignorant. However, we met neither brigands nor soldiers, Axphain
or Graustark. I encountered nothing more alarming than a mountain lion.
And that, Baron Dangloss, recalls me to the sense of a duty I have been
neglecting. A poor wanderer in the hills defended me against the beast
and was badly wounded. He must be taken to a hospital at once, sir,
where he may have the proper care.”
Whereupon, at his request, she hurriedly related the story of that
trying journey through the mountains, not forgetting to paint the
courage of Baldos in most glowing colors. The chief was deeply
interested in the story of the goat-hunter and his party. There was an
odd gleam of satisfaction in his eyes, but she did not observe it.
“You will see that he has immediate attention, won't you?”
she implored in the end.
“He shall have our deepest consideration,” promised he.
“You know I am rather interested, because I shot him, just as if it
were not enough that his legs were being torn by the brute at the time.
He ought not to walk, Baron Dangloss. If you don't mind, I'd suggest an
ambulance,” she hurried on glibly. He could not conceal the smile that
her eagerness inspired. “Really, he is in a serious condition. I think
he needs some quinine and whiskey, too, and—”
“He shall have the best of care,” interrupted the captain.
“Leave him to me, Miss Calhoun.”
“Now, let me tell you something,” said she, after due reflection.
“You must not pay any attention to what he says. He is liable to be
delirious and talk in a terrible sort of way. You know delirious people
never talk rationally.” She was loyally trying to protect Baldos, the
hunted, against any incriminating statements he might make.
“Quite right, Miss Calhoun,” said the baron very gravely.
“And now, I'd like to go to the princess,” said Beverly, absolutely
sure of herself.” You know we are great friends, she and I.”
“I have sent a messenger to announce your arrival. She will expect
you.” Beverly looked about the room in perplexity.
“But there has been no messenger here,” she said.
“He left here some minutes before you came. I knew who it was that
came knocking at our gates, even though she traveled as Princess Yetive
“And, oh! that reminds me, Baron Dangloss, Baldos still believes me
to be the princess. Is it necessary to—to tell him the truth about me?
Just at present, I mean? I'm sure he'll rest much easier if he doesn't
“So far as I am concerned, Miss Calhoun, he shall always regard you
as a queen,” said Dangloss gallantly.
“Thank you. It's very nice of you to—”
A man in uniform entered after knocking at the door of the room. He
saluted his superior and uttered a few words in his own language.
“Her royal highness is awaiting you at the home of the countess,
Miss Calhoun. A detail of men will escort you and your servant to her
“Now, please, Baron Dangloss,” pleaded Beverly at the door, “be nice
to him. You know it hurts him to walk. Can't you have him carried in?”
“If he will consent,” said he quietly. Beverly hurried into the
outer room, after giving the baron a smile he never forgot. Baldos
looked up eagerly, anxiously.
“It's all right,” she said in low tones, pausing for a moment beside
his chair. “Don't get up! Good-bye. I'll come to see you to-morrow.
Don't be in the least disturbed. Baron Dangloss has his instructions.”
Impulsively giving him her hand which he respectfully raised to his
lips, she followed Aunt Fanny and was gone.
Almost immediately Baldos was requested to present himself before
Baron Dangloss in the adjoining room. Refusing to be carried in, he
resolutely strode through the door and stood before the grim old
captain of police, an easy, confident smile on his face. The black
patch once more covered his eye with defiant assertiveness.
“They tell me you are Baldos, a goat-hunter,” said Baron Dangloss,
eyeing him keenly.
“And you were hurt in defending one who is of much consequence in
Graustark. Sit down, my good fellow.” Baldos' eyes gleamed coldly for
an instant. Then he sank into a chair. “While admitting that you have
done Graustark a great service, I am obliged to tell you that I, at
least, know you to be other than what you say. You are not a
goat-hunter, and Baldos is not your name. Am I not right?”
“You have had instructions from your sovereign, Baron Dangloss. Did
they include a command to cross-question me?” asked Baldos haughtily.
Dangloss hesitated for a full minute.
“They did not. I take the liberty of inquiring on my own
“Very well, sir. Until you have a right to question me, I am Baldos
and a goat-hunter. I think I am here to receive surgical treatment.”
“You decline to tell me anything concerning yourself?”
“Only that I am injured and need relief.”
“Perhaps I know more about you than you suspect, sir.”
“I am not in the least interested, Baron Dangloss, in what you know.
The princess brought me into Ganlook, and I have her promise of help
and protection while here. That is all I have to say, except that I
have implicit faith in her word.”
Dangloss sat watching him in silence for some time. No one but
himself knew what was going on in that shrewd, speculative mind. At
length he arose and approached the proud fellow in rags.
“You have earned every consideration at our hands. My men will take
you to the hospital and you shall have the best of care. You have
served our princess well. To-morrow you may feel inclined to talk more
freely with me, for I am your friend, Baldos.”
“I am grateful for that, Baron Dangloss,” said the other simply.
Then he was led away and a comfortable cot in the Ganlook hospital soon
held his long, feverish frame, while capable hands took care of his
wounds. He did not know it, but two fully armed soldiers maintained a
careful guard outside his door under instructions from the head of the
police. Moreover, a picked detail of men sallied forth into the lower
pass in search of the goat-hunter's followers.
In the meantime Beverly was conducted to the home of the Countess
Rallowitz. Her meeting with the princess was most affectionate. There
were tears, laughter and kisses. The whole atmosphere of the place
suggested romance to the eager American girl. Downstairs were the royal
guards; in the halls were attendants; all about were maidservants and
obsequious lackeys, crowding the home of the kindly countess. At last,
comfortable and free from the dust of travel, the two friends sat down
to a dainty meal.
“Oh, I am so delighted,” murmured Beverly for the hundredth time.
“I'm appalled when I think of the dangers you incurred in coming to
me. No one but a very foolish American girl could have undertaken such
a trip as this. Dear me, Beverly, I should have died if anything
dreadful had happened to you. Why did you do it?” questioned the
princess. And then they laughed joyously.
“And you went all the way to St. Petersburg to meet me, you dear,
dear Yetive,” cried Beverly, so warmly that the attentive servant
forgot his mask of reverence.
“Wasn't it ridiculous of me? I know Gren would have forbidden it if
he had been in Edelweiss when I started. And, more shame to me, the
poor fellow is doubtless at the conference with Dawsbergen, utterly
ignorant of my escapade. You should have heard the
ministry—er—ah—“and the princess paused for an English word.
“Kick?” Beverly supplied.
“Yes. They objected violently. And, do you know, I was finally
compelled to issue a private edict to restrain them from sending an
appeal to Grenfall away off there on the frontier. Whether or no, my
uncle insisted that he should be brought home, a three-days' journey,
in order that he might keep me from going to St. Petersburg. Of course,
they could not disobey my edict, and so poor Gren is none the wiser,
unless he has returned from the conference. If he has, I am sure he is
on the way to Ganlook at this very minute.”
“What a whimsical ruler you are,” cried Beverly. “Upsetting
everything sensible just to rush off hundreds of miles to meet me. And
Axphain is trying to capture you, too! Goodness, you must love me!”
“Oh, but I did have a trifling affair of state to lay before
the Czar, my dear. To-morrow we shall be safe and sound in the castle
and it will all be very much worth while. You see, Beverly, dear, even
princesses enjoy a diversion now and then. One wouldn't think anything
of this adventure in the United States; it is the environment that
makes it noticeable. Besides, you traveled as a princess. How did you
And then the conversation related particularly to the advantages of
royalty as viewed from one side and the disadvantages as regarded from
another. For a long time Beverly had been wondering how she should
proceed in the effort to secure absolute clemency for Baldos. As yet
she had said nothing to Yetive of her promise to him, made while she
was a princess.
“At any rate, I'm sure the goat-hunters would not have been so
faithful and true if they had not believed me to be a princess,” said
Beverly, paving the way.” You haven't a man in your kingdom who could
be more chivalrous than Baldos.”
“If he is that kind of a man, he would treat any woman as gently.”
“You should have heard him call me 'your highness,'“ cried Beverly.
“He will loathe me if he ever learns that I deceived him.”
“Oh, I think he deceived himself,” spoke Yetive easily.” Besides,
you look as much like a princess as I.”
“There is something I want to speak very seriously about to you,
Yetive,” said Beverly, making ready for the cast. “You see, he did not
want to enter Ganlook with me, but I insisted. He had been so brave and
gallant, and he was suffering so intensely. It would have been criminal
in me to leave him out there in the wilderness, wouldn't it?”
“It would have been heartless.”
“So I just made him come along. That was right, wasn't it? That's
what you would have done, no matter who he was or what his objections
might have been. Well, you see, it's this way, Yetive: he is some sort
of a fugitive—not a criminal, you know—but just some one they are
hunting for, I don't know why. He wouldn't tell me. That was perfectly
right, if he felt that way, wasn't it?”
“And he had fought a lion in your defense,” supplemented Yetive,
with a schoolgirl's ardor.
“And I had shot him in the arm, too,” added Beverly. “So of course,
I just had to be reasonable. In order to induce him to come with me to
a hospital, I was obliged to guarantee perfect safety to him. His men
went back to the hills, all except old Franz, the driver. Now, the
trouble is this, Yetive: I am not the princess and I cannot
redeem a single promise I made to him. He is helpless, and if anything
goes wrong with him he will hate me forever.”
“No; he will hate me for I am the princess and he is none the
“But he will be told that his princess was Beverly Calhoun, a
supposedly nice American girl. Don't you see how awkward it will be for
me? Now, Yetive, darling, what I wish you to do is to write a note,
order or edict or whatever it is to Baron Dangloss, commanding him to
treat Baldos as a patient and not as a prisoner; and that when he is
fully recovered he is to have the privilege of leaving Ganlook without
“But he may be a desperate offender against the state, Beverly.”
plaintively protested Yetive. “If we only knew what he is charged
“I'm afraid it's something dreadfully serious,” admitted Beverly
gloomily.” He doesn't look like the sort of man who would engage in a
petty undertaking. I'll tell you his story, just as he told it to me,”
and she repeated the meagre confessions of Baldos.
“I see no reason why we should hesitate,” said the princess. “By his
own statement, he is not a desperate criminal. You did quite right in
promising him protection, dear, and I shall sustain you. Do you want to
play the princess to Baldos a little longer?”
“I should love it,” cried Beverly, her eyes sparkling.
“Then I shall write the order to Dangloss at once. Oh, dear, I have
forgotten, I have no official seal here.”
“Couldn't you seal it with your ring?” suggested Beverly. “Oh, I
have it! Send for Baron Dangloss and have him witness your signature.
He can't get away from that, you see, and after we reach Edelweiss, you
can fix up a regular edict, seal and all,” cried the resourceful
Ink and paper were sent for and the two conspirators lent their
wisdom to the task of preparing an order for the salvation of Baldos,
the fugitive. The order read:
To BARON JASTO DANGLOSS, COMMANDING THE CIVIC AND MILITARY POLICE
“You are hereby informed that Baldos, the man who entered the city
with Miss Calhoun, is not to be regarded as a prisoner now or
hereafter. He is to be given capable medical and surgical
until fully recovered, when he is to be allowed to go his way in
“Also, he is to be provided with suitable wearing apparel and made
comfortable in every way.
“Also, the members of his party, now in the hills (whose names are
unknown to me), are to be accorded every protection. Franz, the
driver, is to have his freedom if he desires it.
“And from this edict there is no recourse until its abatement by
“There,” said the princess, affixing her signature “I think that
will be sufficient.” Then she rang for a servant. “Send to Baron
Dangloss and ask him to come here at once.”
Fifteen minutes later the chief of police stood in the presence of
the eager young interpreters of justice.
“I want you to witness my signature, Baron Dangloss,” said the
princess after the greetings.
“Gladly,” said the officer.
“Well, here is where I signed,” said Yetive, handing him the paper.
“I don't have to write my name over again, do I?”
“Not at all,” said the baron gallantly. And he boldly signed his
name as a witness.
“They wouldn't do that in the United States,” murmured Beverly, who
knew something about red tape at Washington.
“It is a command to you, baron,” said Yetive, handing him the
document with a rare smile. He read it through slowly. Then he bit his
lip and coughed. “What is the matter, baron?” asked Yetive, still
“A transitory emotion, your highness, that is all,” said he; but his
hand trembled as he folded the paper.
CHAPTER X. INSIDE THE CASTLE WALLS
Bright and early the next morning the party was ready for the last
of the journey to Edelweiss. Less than twenty miles separated Ganlook
from the capital, and the road was in excellent condition. Beverly
Calhoun, tired and contented, had slept soundly until aroused by the
princess herself. Their rooms adjoined each other, and when Yetive,
shortly after daybreak, stole into the American girl's chamber, Beverly
was sleeping so sweetly that the intruder would have retreated had it
not been for the boisterous shouts of stable-boys in the courtyard
below the windows. She hurried to a window and looked out upon the
gray-cloaked morning. Postillions and stable-boys were congregated near
the gates, tormenting a ragged old man who stood with his back against
one of the huge posts. In some curiosity, she called Beverly from her
slumbers, urging the sleepy one to hasten to the window.
“Is this one of your friends from the wilderness?” she asked.
“It's Franz!” cried Beverly, rubbing her pretty eyes. Then she
became thoroughly awake. “What are they doing to him? Who are those
ruffians?” she demanded indignantly.
“They are my servants, and—”
“Shame on them! The wretches! What has old Franz done that they
should—Call to them! Tell 'em you'll cut their heads off if they don't
stop. He's a dear old fellow in spite of his rags, and he—”
The window-sash flew open and the tormentors in the court below were
astonished by the sound of a woman's voice, coming, as it were, from
the clouds. A dozen pairs of eyes were turned upward; the commotion
ended suddenly. In the window above stood two graceful, white-robed
figures. The sun, still far below the ridge of mountains, had not yet
robbed the morning of the gray, dewy shadows that belong to five
“What are you doing to that poor old man?” cried Yetive, and it was
the first time any of them had seen anger in the princess's face. They
slunk back in dismay. “Let him alone! You, Gartz, see that he has food
and drink, and without delay. Report to me later on, sir, and explain,
if you can, why you have conducted yourselves in so unbecoming a
manner.” Then the window was closed and the princess found herself in
the warm arms of her friend.
“I couldn't understand a word you said, Yetive? but I knew you were
giving it to them hot and heavy. Did you see how nicely old Franz bowed
to you? Goodness, his head almost touched the ground.”
“He was bowing to you, Beverly. You forgot that you are the princess
“Isn't that funny? I had quite forgotten it—the poor old goose.”
Later, when the coaches and escort were drawn up in front of the
Rallowitz palace ready for the start, the princess called the chief
postillion, Gartz, to the step of her coach.
“What was the meaning of the disturbance I witnessed this morning?”
Gartz hung his head. “We thought the man was crazy, your highness.
He had been telling us such monstrous lies,” he mumbled.
“Are you sure they were lies?”
“Oh, quite sure, your highness. They were laughable. He said, for
one thing, that it was he who drove your highness's coach into Ganlook
last evening, when everybody knows that I had full charge of the coach
“You are very much mistaken, Gartz,” she said, distinctly. He
blinked his eyes.
“Your highness,” he gasped, “you surely remember—”
“Enough, sir. Franz drove the princess into Ganlook last night. He
says so himself, does he not?”
“Yes, your highness,” murmured poor Gartz.
“What more did he say to you?”
“He said he had come from his master, who is in the hospital, to
inquire after your health and to bear his thanks for the kindnesses you
have secured for him. He says his master is faring well and is
satisfied to remain where he is. Also, he said that his master was
sending him back into the mountains to assure his friends that he is
safe and to bear a certain message of cheer to them, sent forth by the
princess. It was all so foolish and crazy, your highness, that we could
but jibe and laugh at the poor creature.”
“It is you who have been foolish, sir. Send the old man to me.”
“He has gone, your highness,” in frightened tones.
“So much the better,” said the princess, dismissing him with a wave
of the hand. Gartz went away in a daze, and for days he took every
opportunity to look for other signs of mental disorder in the conduct
of his mistress, at the same time indulging in speculation as to his
own soundness of mind.
Ganlook's population lined the chief thoroughfare, awaiting the
departure of the princess, although the hour was early. Beverly peered
forth curiously as the coach moved off. The quaint, half-oriental
costumes of the townspeople, the odd little children, the bright
colors, the perfect love and reverence that shone in the faces of the
multitude impressed her deeply. She was never to forget that
picturesque morning. Baron Dangloss rode beside the coach until it
passed through the southern gates and into the countryside. A company
of cavalrymen acted as escort. The bright red trousers and top-boots,
with the deep-blue jackets, reminded Beverly more than ever of the
operatic figures she had seen so often at home. There was a fierce,
dark cast to the faces of these soldiers, however, that removed any
suggestion of play. The girl was in ecstasies. Everything about her
appealed to the romantic side of her nature; everything seemed so
unreal and so like the storybook. The princess smiled lovingly upon the
throngs that lined the street; there was no man among them who would
not have laid down his life for the gracious ruler.
“Oh, I love your soldiers,” cried Beverly warmly.
“Poor fellows, who knows how soon they may be called upon to face
death in the Dawsbergen hills?” said Yetive, a shadow crossing her
Dangloss was to remain in Ganlook for several days, on guard against
manifestations by the Axphainians. A corps of spies and scouts was
working with him, and couriers were ready to ride at a moment's notice
to the castle in Edelweiss. Before they parted, Beverly extracted a
renewal of his promise to take good care of Baldos. She sent a message
to the injured man, deploring the fact that she was compelled to leave
Ganlook without seeing him as she had promised. It was her intention to
have him come to Edelweiss as soon as he was in a condition to be
removed. Captain Dangloss smiled mysteriously, but he had no comment to
make. He had received his orders and was obeying them to the letter.
“I wonder if Grenfall has heard of my harum-scarum trip to St.
Petersburg,” reflected Yetive, making herself comfortable in the coach
after the gates and the multitudes were far behind.
“I'll go you a box of chocolate creams that we meet him before we
get to Edelweiss,” ventured Beverly.
“Agreed,” said the princess.
“Don't say 'agreed,' dear. 'Done' is the word,” corrected the
American girl airily.
Beverly won. Grenfall Lorry and a small company of horsemen rode up
in furious haste long before the sun was in mid-sky. An attempt to
depict the scene between him and his venturesome wife would be a
hopeless task. The way in which his face cleared itself of distress and
worry was a joy in itself. To use his own words, he breathed freely for
the first time in hours. “The American” took the place of the officer
who rode beside the coach, and the trio kept up an eager, interesting
conversation during the next two hours.
It was a warm, sleepy day, but all signs of drowsiness disappeared
with the advent of Lorry. He had reached Edelweiss late the night
before, after a three days' ride from the conference with Dawsbergen.
At first he encountered trouble in trying to discover what had become
of the princess. Those at the castle were aware of the fact that she
had reached Ganlook safely and sought to put him off with subterfuges.
He stormed to such a degree, however, that their object failed. The
result was that he was off for Ganlook with the earliest light of day.
Regarding the conference with Prince Gabriel's representatives, he
had but little to say. The escaped murderer naturally refused to
surrender and was to all appearances quite firmly established in power
once more. Lorry's only hope was that the reversal of feeling in
Dawsbergen might work ruin for the prince. He was carrying affairs with
a high hand, dealing vengeful blows to the friends of his half-brother
and encouraging a lawlessness that sooner or later must prove his
undoing. His representatives at the conference were an arrogant,
law-defying set of men who laughed scornfully at every proposal made by
“We told them that if he were not surrendered to our authorities
inside of sixty days we would declare war and go down and take him,”
concluded “The American.”
“Two months,” cried Yetive. “I don't understand.”
“There was method in that ultimatum. Axphain, of course, will set up
a howl, but we can forestall any action the Princess Volga may
undertake. Naturally, one might suspect that we should declare war at
once, inasmuch as he must be taken sooner or later. But here is the
point: before two months have elapsed the better element of Dawsbergen
will be so disgusted with the new dose of Gabriel that it will do
anything to avert a war on his account. We have led them to believe
that Axphain will lend moral, if not physical, support to our cause.
Give them two months in which to get over this tremendous hysteria, and
they'll find their senses. Gabriel isn't worth it, you see, and down in
their hearts they know it. They really loved young Dantan, who seems to
be a devil of a good fellow. I'll wager my head that in six weeks
they'll be wishing he were back on the throne again. And just to think
of it, Yetive, dear, you were off there in the very heart of Axphain,
risking everything,” he cried, wiping the moisture from his brow.
“It is just eleven days since I left Edelweiss, and I have had a
lovely journey,” she said, with one of her rare smiles. He shook his
head gravely, and she resolved in her heart never to give him another
such cause for alarm.
“And in the meantime, Mr. Grenfall Lorry, you are blaming me and
hating me and all that for being the real cause of your wife's
escapade,” said Beverly Calhoun plaintively. “I'm awfully sorry. But,
you must remember one thing, sir; I did not put her up to this
ridiculous trip. She did it of her own free will and accord. Besides, I
am the one who met the lion and almost got devoured, not Yetive, if you
“I'll punish you by turning you over to old Count Marlanx, the
commander of the army in Graustark,” said Lorry, laughingly. “He's a
terrible ogre, worse than any lion.”
“Heaven pity you, Beverly, if you fall into his clutches,” cried
Yetive. “He has had five wives and survives to look for a sixth. You
see how terrible it would be.”
“I'm not afraid of him,” boasted Beverly, but there came a time when
she thought of those words with a shudder.
“By the way, Yetive, I have had word from Harry Anguish. He and the
countess will leave Paris this week, if the baby's willing, and will be
in Edelweiss soon. You don't know how it relieves me to know that Harry
will be with us at this time.”
Yetive's eyes answered his enthusiasm. Both had a warm and grateful
memory of the loyal service which the young American had rendered his
friend when they had first come to Graustark in quest of the princess;
and both had a great regard for his wife, the Countess Dagmar, who, as
Yetive's lady in waiting, had been through all the perils of those
exciting days with them.
As they drew near the gates of Edelweiss, a large body of horsemen
rode forth to meet them. The afternoon was well on the way to night,
and the air of the valley was cool and refreshing, despite the rays of
the June sun.
“Edelweiss at last,” murmured Beverly, her face aglow. “The heart of
Graustark. Do you know that I have been brushing up on my grammar? I
have learned the meaning of the word 'Graustark,' and it seems so
appropriate. Grau is gray, hoary, old; stark is strong.
Old and strong—isn't it, dear?”
“And here rides the oldest and strongest man in all Graustark—the
Iron Count of Marlanx,” said Yetive, looking down the road. “See—the
strange gray man in front there is our greatest general, our craftiest
fighter, our most heartless warrior. Does he not look like the eagle or
A moment later the parties met, and the newcomers swung into line
with the escort. Two men rode up to the carriage and saluted. One was
Count Marlanx, the other Colonel Quinnox, of the Royal Guard. The
count, lean and gray as a wolf, revealed rows of huge white teeth in
his perfunctory smile of welcome, while young Quinnox's face fairly
beamed with honest joy. In the post that he held, he was but following
in the footsteps of his forefathers. Since history began in Graustark,
a Quinnox had been in charge of the castle guard.
The “Iron Count,” as he sometimes was called, was past his sixtieth
year. For twenty years he had been in command of the army. One had but
to look at his strong, sardonic face to know that he was a fearless
leader, a savage fighter. His eyes were black, piercing and never
quiet; his hair and close-cropped beard were almost snow-white; his
voice was heavy and without a vestige of warmth. Since her babyhood
Yetive had stood in awe of this grim old warrior. It was no uncommon
thing for mothers to subdue disobedient children with the threat to
give them over to the “Iron Count.” “Old Marlanx will get you if you're
not good,” was a household phrase in Edelweiss. He had been married
five times and as many times had he been left a widower. If he were
disconsolate in any instance, no one had been able to discover the
fact. Enormously rich, as riches go in Graustark, he had found young
women for his wives who thought only of his gold and his lands in the
trade they made with Cupid. It was said that without exception they
died happy. Death was a joy. The fortress overlooking the valley to the
south was no more rugged and unyielding than the man who made his home
within its walls. He lived there from choice and it was with his own
money that he fitted up the commandant's quarters in truly regal style.
Power was more to him than wealth, though he enjoyed both.
Colonel Quinnox brought news from the castle. Yetive's uncle and
aunt, the Count and Countess Halfont, were eagerly expecting her
return, and the city was preparing to manifest its joy in the most
exuberant fashion. As they drew up to the gates the shouts of the
people came to the ears of the travelers. Then the boom of cannon and
the blare of bands broke upon the air, thrilling Beverly to the heart.
She wondered how Yetive could be so calm and unmoved in the face of all
Past the great Hotel Regengetz and the Tower moved the gay
procession, into the broad stretch of boulevard that led to the gates
of the palace grounds. The gates stood wide open and inviting. Inside
was Jacob Fraasch, the chief steward of the grounds, with his men drawn
up in line; upon the walls the sentries came to parade rest; on the
plaza the Royal band was playing as though by inspiration. Then the
gates closed behind the coach and escort, and Beverly Calhoun was safe
inside the castle walls. The “Iron Count” handed her from the carriage
at the portals of the palace, and she stood as one in a dream.
CHAPTER XI. THE ROYAL COACH OF
The two weeks following Beverly Calhoun's advent into the royal
household were filled with joy and wonder for her. Daily she sent
glowing letters to her father, mother and brothers in Washington,
elaborating vastly upon the paradise into which she had fallen. To her
highly emotional mind, the praises of Graustark had been but poorly
sung. The huge old castle, relic of the feudal days, with its turrets
and bastions and portcullises, Impressed her with a never-ending sense
of wonder. Its great halls and stairways, its chapel, the throne-room,
and the armor-closet; its underground passages and dungeons all united
to fill her imaginative soul with the richest, rarest joys of finance.
Simple American girl that she was, unused to the rigorous etiquette of
royalty, she found embarrassment in the first confusion of events, but
she was not long in recovering her poise.
Her apartments were near those of the Princess Yetive. In the
private intercourse enjoyed by these women, all manner of restraint was
abandoned by the visitor and every vestige of royalty slipped from the
princess. Count Halfont and his adorable wife, the Countess Yvonne,
both of whom had grown old in the court, found the girl and her strange
servant a source of wonder and delight.
Some days after Beverly's arrival there came to the castle Harry
Anguish and his wife, the vivacious Dagmar. With them came the year-old
cooing babe who was to overthrow the heart and head of every being in
the household, from princess down. The tiny Dagmar became queen at
once, and no one disputed her rule.
Anguish, the painter, became Anguish, the strategist and soldier. He
planned with Lorry and the ministry, advancing some of the most
hair-brained projects that ever encouraged discussion in a solemn
conclave. The staid, cautious ministers looked upon him with wonder,
but so plausible did he made his proposals appear that they were forced
to consider them seriously. The old Count of Marlanx held him in great
disdain, and did not hesitate to expose his contempt. This did not
disturb Anguish in the least, for he was as optimistic as the sunshine.
His plan for the recapture of Gabriel was ridiculously improbable, but
it was afterwards seen that had it been attempted much distress and
delay might actually have been avoided.
Yetive and Beverly, with Dagmar and the baby, made merry while the
men were in council. Their mornings were spent in the shady park
surrounding the castle, their afternoons in driving, riding and
walking. Oftentimes the princess was barred from these simple pleasures
by the exigencies of her position. She was obliged to grant audiences,
observe certain customs of state, attend to the charities that came
directly under her supervision, and confer with the nobles on affairs
of weight and importance. Beverly delighted in the throne-room and the
underground passages; they signified more to her than all the rest. She
was shown the room in which Lorry had foiled the Viennese who once
tried to abduct Yetive. The dungeon where Gabriel spent his first days
of confinement, the Tower in which Lorry had been held a prisoner, and
the monastery in the clouds were all places of unusual interest to her.
Soon the people of the city began to recognize the fair American
girl who was a guest in the castle, and a certain amount of homage was
paid to her. When she rode or drove in the streets, with her attendant
soldiers, the people bowed as deeply and as respectfully as they did to
the princess herself, and Beverly was just as grand and gracious as if
she had been born with a sceptre in her hand.
The soft moonlight nights charmed her with a sense of rapture never
known before. With the castle brilliantly illuminated, the halls and
drawing-rooms filled with gay courtiers, the harpists at their posts,
the military band playing in the parade ground, the balconies and
porches offering their most inviting allurements, it is no wonder that
Beverly was entranced. War had no terrors for her. If she thought of it
at all, it was with the fear that it might disturb the dream into which
she had fallen. True, there was little or nothing to distress the most
timid in these first days. The controversy between the principalities
was at a standstill, although there was not an hour in which
preparations for the worst were neglected. To Beverly Calhoun, it meant
little when sentiment was laid aside; to Yetive and her people this
probable war with Dawsbergen meant everything.
Dangloss, going back and forth between Edelweiss and the frontier
north of Ganlook, where the best of the police and secret service
watched with the sleepless eyes of the lynx, brought unsettling news to
the ministry. Axphain troops were engaged in the annual maneuvers just
across the border in their own territory. Usually these were held in
the plains near the capital, and there was a sinister significance in
the fact that this year they were being carried on in the rough
southern extremity of the principality, within a day's march of the
Graustark line, fully two months earlier than usual. The doughty baron
reported that foot, horse and artillery were engaged in the drills, and
that fully 8,000 men were massed in the south of Axphain. The
fortifications of Ganlook, Labbot and other towns in northern Graustark
were strengthened with almost the same care as those in the south,
where conflict with Dawsbergen might first be expected. General Marlanx
and his staff rested neither day nor night. The army of Graustark was
ready. Underneath the castle's gay exterior there smouldered the fire
of battle, the tremor of defiance.
Late one afternoon Beverly Calhoun and Mrs. Anguish drove up in
state to the Tower, wherein sat Dangloss and his watchdogs. The scowl
left his face as far as nature would permit and he welcomed the ladies
“I came to ask about my friend, the goat-hunter,” said Beverly, her
cheeks a trifle rosier than usual.
“He is far from an amiable person, your highness,” said the officer.
When discussing Baldos he never failed to address Beverly as “your
highness.” “The fever is gone and he is able to walk without much pain,
but he is as restless as a witch. Following instructions, I have not
questioned him concerning his plans, but I fancy he is eager to return
to the hills.”
“What did he say when you gave him my message?” asked Beverly.
“Which one, your highness?” asked he, with tantalizing density.
“Why, the suggestion that he should come to Edelweiss for better
treatment,” retorted Beverly severely.
“He said he was extremely grateful for your kind offices, but he did
not deem it advisable to come to this city. He requested me to thank
you in his behalf and to tell you that he will never forget what you
have done for him.”
“And he refuses to come to Edelweiss?” irritably demanded Beverly.
“Yes, your highness. You see, he still regards himself with
disfavor, being a fugitive. It is hardly fair to blame him for
respecting the security of the hills.”
“I hoped that I might induce him to give up his old life and engage
in something perfectly honest, although, mind you, Baron Dangloss, I do
not question his integrity in the least. He should have a chance to
prove himself worthy, that's all. This morning I petitioned Count
Marlanx to give him a place in the Castle Guard.”
“My dear Miss Calhoun, the princess has—” began the captain.
“Her highness has sanctioned the request,” interrupted she.
“And the count has promised to discover a vacancy,” said Dagmar,
with a smile that the baron understood perfectly well.
“This is the first time on record that old Marlanx has ever done
anything to oblige a soul save himself. It is wonderful, Miss Calhoun.
What spell do you Americans cast over rock and metal that they become
as sand in your fingers?” said the baron, admiration and wonder in his
“You dear old flatterer,” cried Beverly, so warmly that he caught
“I believe that you can conquer even that stubborn fellow in
Ganlook,” he said, fumbling with his glasses. “He is the most obstinate
being I know, and yet in ten minutes you could bring him to terms, I am
sure. He could not resist you.”
“He still thinks I am the princess?”
“He does, and swears by you.”
“Then, my mind is made up. I'll go to Ganlook and bring him back
with me, willy-nilly. He is too good a man to be lost in the hills.
Good-bye, Baron Dangloss. Thank you ever and ever so much. Oh, yes;
will you write an order delivering him over to me? The hospital people
may be—er—disobliging, you know.”
“It shall be in your highness's hands this evening.”
The next morning, with Colonel Quinnox and a small escort, Beverly
Calhoun set off in one of the royal coaches for Ganlook, accompanied by
faithful Aunt Fanny. She carried the order from Baron Dangloss and a
letter from Yetive to the Countess Rallowitz, insuring hospitality over
night in the northern town. Lorry and the royal household entered
merrily into her project, and she went away with the godspeeds of all.
The Iron Count himself rode beside her coach to the city gates, an
“Now, you'll be sure to find a nice place for him in the castle
guard, won't you, Count Marlanx?” she said at the parting, her hopes as
fresh as the daisy in the dew, her confidence supreme. The count
promised faithfully, even eagerly. Colonel Quinnox, trained as he was
in the diplomacy of silence, could scarcely conceal his astonishment at
the conquest of the hard old warrior.
Although the afternoon was well spent before Beverly reached
Ganlook, she was resolved to visit the obdurate patient at once,
relying upon her resourcefulness to secure his promise to start with
her for Edelweiss on the following morning. The coach delivered her at
the hospital door in grand style. When the visitor was ushered into the
snug little room of the governor's office, her heart was throbbing and
her composure was undergoing a most unusual strain. It annoyed her to
discover that the approaching contact with an humble goat-hunter was
giving her such unmistakable symptoms of perturbation.
From an upstairs window in the hospital the convalescent but unhappy
patient witnessed her approach and arrival. His sore, lonely heart gave
a bound of joy, for the days had seemed long since her departure.
He had had time to think during these days, too. Turning over in his
mind all of the details in connection with their meeting and their
subsequent intercourse, it began to dawn upon him that she might not be
what she assumed to be. Doubts assailed him, suspicions grew into
amazing forms of certainty. There were times when he laughed
sardonically at himself for being taken in by this strange but charming
young woman, but through it all his heart and mind were being drawn
more and more fervently toward her. More than once he called himself a
fool and more than once he dreamed foolish dreams of her—princess or
not. Of one thing he was sure: he had come to love the adventure for
the sake of what it promised and there was no bitterness beneath his
Arrayed in clean linen and presentable clothes, pale from indoor
confinement and fever, but once more the straight and strong cavalier
of the hills, he hastened into her presence when the summons came for
him to descend. He dropped to his knee and kissed her hand, determined
to play the game, notwithstanding his doubts. As he arose she glanced
for a flitting second into his dark eyes, and her own long lashes
“Your highness!” he said gratefully.
“How well and strong you look,” she said hurriedly. “Some of the tan
is gone, but you look as though you had never been ill. Are you quite
“They say I am as good as new,” he smilingly answered. “A trifle
weak and uncertain in my lower extremities, but a few days of exercise
in the mountains will overcome all that. Is all well with you and
Graustark? They will give me no news here, by whose order I do not
“Turn about is fair play, sir. It is a well-established fact that
you will give them no news. Yes, all is well with me and mine.
Were you beginning to think that I had deserted you? It has been two
weeks, hasn't it?”
“Ah, your highness, I realize that you have had much more important
things to do than to think of poor Baldos, I am exceedingly grateful
for this sign of interest in my welfare. Your visit is the brightest
experience of my life.”
“Be seated!” she cried suddenly. “You are too ill to stand.”
“Were I dying I should refuse to be seated while your highness
stands,” said he simply. His shoulders seemed to square themselves
involuntarily and his left hand twitched as though accustomed to the
habit of touching a sword-hilt. Beverly sat down instantly; with his
usual easy grace, he took a chair near by. They were alone in the
“Even though you were on your last legs?” she murmured, and then
wondered how she could have uttered anything so inane. Somehow, she was
beginning to fear that he was not the ordinary person she had judged
him to be. “You are to be discharged from the hospital to-morrow,” she
“To-morrow?” he cried, his eyes lighting with joy. “I may go then?”
“I have decided to take you to Edelweiss with me,” she said, very
much as if that were all there was to it. He stared at her for a full
minute as though doubting his ears.
“No!” he said, at last, his jaws settling, his eyes glistening. It
was a terrible setback for Beverly's confidence. “Your highness forgets
that I have your promise of absolute freedom.”
“But you are to be free,” she protested. “You have nothing to fear.
It is not compulsory, you know. You don't have to go unless you really
want to. But my heart is set on having you in—in the castle guard.”
His bitter, mocking laugh surprised and wounded her, which he was quick
to see, for his contrition was immediate.
“Pardon, your highness. I am a rude, ungrateful wretch, and I
deserve punishment instead of reward. The proposal was so astounding
that I forgot myself completely,” he said.
Whereupon, catching him in this contrite mood, she began a
determined assault against his resolution. For an hour she devoted her
whole heart and soul to the task of overcoming his prejudices, fears
and objections, meeting his protestations firmly and logically,
unconscious of the fact that her very enthusiasm was betraying her to
him. The first signs of weakening inspired her afresh and at last she
was riding over him rough-shod, a happy victor. She made promises that
Yetive herself could not have made; she offered inducements that never
could be carried out, although in her zeal she did not know it to be
so; she painted such pictures of ease, comfort and pleasure that he
wondered why royalty did not exchange places with its servants. In the
end, overcome by the spirit of adventure and a desire to be near her,
he agreed to enter the service for six months, at the expiration of
which time he was to be released from all obligations if he so desired.
“But my friends in the pass, your highness,” he said in
surrendering, “what is to become of them? They are waiting for me out
there in the wilderness. I am not base enough to desert them.”
“Can't you get word to them?” she asked eagerly. “Let them come into
the city, too. We will provide for the poor fellows, believe me.”
“That, at least, is impossible, your highness,” he said, shaking his
head sadly. “You will have to slay them before you can bring them
within the city gates. My only hope is that Franz may be here tonight.
He has permission to enter, and I am expecting him to-day or
“You can send word to them that you are sound and safe and you can
tell them that Graustark soldiers shall be instructed to pay no
attention to them whatever. They shall not be disturbed.” He laughed
outright at her enthusiasm. Many times during her eager conversation
with Baldos she had almost betrayed the fact that she was not the
princess. Some of her expressions were distinctly unregal and some of
her slips were hopeless, as she viewed them in retrospect.
“What am I? Only the humble goat-hunter, hunted to death and eager
for a short respite. Do with me as you like, your highness. You shall
be my princess and sovereign for six months, at least,” he said,
sighing. “Perhaps it is for the best.”
“You are the strangest man I've ever seen,” she remarked, puzzled
That night Franz appeared at the hospital and was left alone with
Baldos for an hour or more. What passed between them, no outsider knew,
though there tears in the eyes of both at the parting. But Franz did
not start for the pass that night, as they had expected. Strange news
had come to the ears of the faithful old follower and he hung about
Ganlook until morning came, eager to catch the ear of his leader before
it was too late.
The coach was drawn up in front of the hospital at eight o'clock,
Beverly triumphant in command. Baldos came down the steps slowly,
carefully, favoring the newly healed ligaments in his legs. She smiled
cheerily at him and he swung his rakish hat low. There was no sign of
the black patch. Suddenly he started and peered intently into the
little knot of people near the coach. A look of anxiety crossed his
face. From the crowd advanced a grizzled old beggar who boldly extended
his hand. Baldos grasped the proffered hand and then stepped into the
coach. No one saw the bit of white paper that passed from Franz's palm
into the possession of Baldos. Then the coach was off for Edelweiss,
the people of Ganlook enjoying the unusual spectacle of a mysterious
and apparently undistinguished stranger sitting in luxurious ease
beside a fair lady in the royal coach of Graustark.
CHAPTER XII. IN SERVICE
It was a drowsy day, and, besides, Baldos was not in a communicative
frame of mind. Beverly put forth her best efforts during the forenoon,
but after the basket luncheon had been disposed of in the shade at the
roadside, she was content to give up the struggle and surrender to the
soothing importunities of the coach as it bowled along. She dozed
peacefully, conscious to the last that he was a most ungracious
creature and more worthy of resentment than of benefaction. Baldos was
not intentionally disagreeable; he was morose and unhappy because he
could not help it. Was he not leaving his friends to wander alone in
the wilderness while he drifted weakly into the comforts and pleasures
of an enviable service? His heart was not in full sympathy with the
present turn of affairs, and he could not deny that a selfish motive
was responsible for his action. He had the all too human eagerness to
serve beauty; the blood and fire of youth were strong in this wayward
nobleman of the hills.
Lying back in the seat, he pensively studied the face of the
sleeping girl whose dark-brown head was pillowed against the corner
cushions of the coach. Her hat had been removed for the sake of
comfort. The dark lashes fell like a soft curtain over her eyes,
obscuring the merry gray that had overcome his apprehensions. Her
breathing was deep and regular and peaceful. One little gloved hand
rested carelessly in her lap, the other upon her breast near the
delicate throat. The heart of Baldos was troubled. The picture he
looked upon was entrancing, uplifting; he rose from the lowly state in
which she had found him to the position of admirer in secret to a
princess, real or assumed. He found himself again wondering if she were
really Yetive, and with that fear in his heart he was envying Grenfall
Lorry, the lord and master of this exquisite creature, envying with all
the helplessness of one whose hope is blasted at birth.
The note which had been surreptitiously passed to him in Ganlook lay
crumpled and forgotten inside his coat pocket, where he had dropped it
the moment it had come into his possession, supposing that the message
contained information which had been forgotten by Franz, and was by no
means of a nature to demand immediate attention. Had he read it at once
his suspicions would have been confirmed, and it is barely possible
that he would have refused to enter the city.
Late in the afternoon the walls of Edelweiss were sighted. For the
first time he looked upon the distant housetops of the principal city
of Graustark. Up in the clouds, on the summit of the mountain peak
overlooking the city, stood the famed monastery of Saint Valentine.
Stretching up the gradual incline were the homes of citizens,
accessible only by footpaths and donkey roads. Beverly was awake and
impatient to reach the journey's end. He had proved a most
disappointing companion, polite, but with a baffling indifference that
irritated her considerably. There was a set expression of defiance in
his strong, clean-cut face, the look of a soldier advancing to meet a
“I do hope he'll not always act this way,” she was complaining in
her thoughts. “He was so charmingly impudent out in the hills, so
deliciously human. Now he is like a clam. Yetive will think I am such a
fool if he doesn't live up to the reputation I've given him!”
“Here are the gates,” he said, half to himself. “What is there in
store for me beyond those walls?”
“Oh, I wish you wouldn't be so dismal,” she cried in despair. “It
seems just like a funeral.”
“A thousand apologies, your highness,” he murmured, with a sudden
lightness of speech and manner. “Henceforth I shall be a most amiable
jester, to please you.”
Beverly and the faithful Aunt Fanny were driven to the castle, where
the former bade farewell to her new knight until the following morning,
when he was to appear before her for personal instructions. Colonel
Quinnox escorted him to the barracks of the guards where he was to
share a room with young Haddan, a corporal in the service.
“The wild, untamed gentleman from the hills came without a word, I
see,” said Lorry, who had watched the approach. He and Yetive stood in
the window overlooking the grounds from the princess's boudoir, Beverly
had just entered and thrown herself upon a divan.
“Yes, he's here,” she said shortly.
“How long do you, with all your cleverness, expect to hoodwink him
into the belief that you are the princess?” asked Yetive, amused but
“He's a great fool for being hoodwinked at all,” said Beverly, very
much at odds with her protege. “In an hour from now he will know the
truth and will be howling like a madman for his freedom.”
“Not so soon as that, Beverly,” said Lorry consolingly. “The guards
and officers have their instructions to keep him in the dark as long as
“Well, I'm tired and mad and hungry and everything else that isn't
compatible. Let's talk about the war,” said Beverly, the sunshine in
her face momentarily eclipsed by the dark cloud of disappointment.
Baldos was notified that duty would be assigned to him in the
morning. He went through the formalities which bound him to the service
for six months, listening indifferently to the words that foretold the
fate of a traitor. It was not until his hew uniform and equipment came
into his possession that he remembered the note resting in his pocket.
He drew it out and began to read it with the slight interest of one who
has anticipated the effect. But not for long was he to remain
apathetic. The first few lines brought a look of understanding to his
eyes; then he laughed the easy laugh of one who has cast care and
confidence to the winds. This is what he read:
“She is not the princess. We have been duped. Last night I learned
the truth. She is Miss Calhoun, an American, going to be a guest at the
castle. Refuse to go with her into Edelweiss. It may be a trap and may
mean death. Question her boldly before committing yourself.”
There came the natural impulse to make a dash for the outside world,
fighting his way through if necessary. Looking back over the ground, he
wondered how he could have been deceived at all by the unconventional
American. In the clear light of retrospection he now saw how impossible
it was for her to have been the princess. Every act, every word, every
look should have told him the truth. Every flaw in her masquerading now
presented itself to him and he was compelled to laugh at his own
simplicity. Caution, after all, was the largest component part of his
makeup; the craftiness of the hunted was deeply rooted in his being. He
saw a very serious side to the adventure. Stretching himself upon the
cot in the corner of the room he gave himself over to plotting,
In the midst of his thoughts a sudden light burst in upon him. His
eyes gleamed with a new fire, his heart leaped with new animation, his
blood ran warm again. Leaping to his feet he ran to the window to
re-read the note from old Franz. Then he settled back and laughed with
a fervor that cleared the brain of a thousand vague misgivings.
“She is Miss Calhoun, an American going to be a guest at the
castle,”—not the princess, but Miss Calhoun. Once more the
memory of the clear gray eyes leaped into life; again he saw her asleep
in the coach on the road from Ganlook; again he recalled the fervent
throbs his guilty heart had felt as he looked upon this fair creature,
at one time the supposed treasure of another man. Now she was Miss
Calhoun, and her gray eyes, her entrancing smile, her wondrous vivacity
were not for one man alone. It was marvelous what a change this sudden
realization wrought in the view ahead of him. The whole situation
seemed to be transformed into something more desirable than ever
before. His face cleared, his spirits leaped higher and higher with the
buoyancy of fresh relief, his confidence in himself crept back into
existence. And all because the fair deceiver, the slim girl with the
brave gray eyes who had drawn him into a net, was not a princess!
Something told him that she had not drawn him into his present
position with any desire to injure or with the slightest sense of
malice. To her it had been a merry jest, a pleasant comedy. Underneath
all he saw the goodness of her motive in taking him from the old life,
and putting him into his present position of trust. He had helped her,
and she was ready to help him to the limit of her power. His position
in Edelweiss was clearly enough defined. The more he thought of it, the
more justifiable it seemed as viewed from her point of observation. How
long she hoped to keep him in the dark he could not tell. The outcome
would be entertaining; her efforts to deceive. If she kept them up,
would be amusing. Altogether, he was ready, with the leisure and joy of
youth, to await developments and to enjoy the comedy from a point of
view which she could not at once suspect.
His subtle efforts to draw Haddan into a discussion of the princess
and her household resulted unsatisfactorily. The young guard was
annoyingly unresponsive. He had his secret instructions and could not
be inveigled into betraying himself. Baldos went to sleep that night
with his mind confused by doubts. His talk with Haddan had left him
quite undecided as to the value of old Franz's warning. Either Franz
was mistaken, or Haddan was a most skilful dissembler. It struck him as
utterly beyond the pale of reason that the entire castle guard should
have been enlisted in the scheme to deceive him. When sleep came, he
was contenting himself with the thought that morning doubtless would
give him clearer insight to the situation.
Both he and Beverly Calhoun were ignorant of the true conditions
that attached themselves to the new recruit. Baron Dangloss alone knew
that Haddan was a trusted agent of the secret service, with
instructions to shadow the newcomer day and night. That there was a
mystery surrounding the character of Baldos, the goat-hunter, Dangloss
did not question for an instant: and in spite of the instructions
received at the outset, he was using all his skill to unravel it.
Baldos was not summoned to the castle until noon. His serene
indifference to the outcome of the visit was calculated to deceive the
friendly but watchful Haddan. Dressed carefully in the close-fitting
uniform of the royal guard, taller than most of his fellows, handsomer
by far than any, he was the most noticeable figure in and about the
barracks. Haddan coached him in the way he was to approach the
princess, Baldos listening with exaggerated intentness and with deep
regard for detail.
Beverly was in the small audience-room off the main reception hall
when he was ushered into her presence. The servants and
ladies-in-waiting disappeared at a signal from her. She arose to greet
him and he knelt to kiss her hand. For a moment her tongue was bound.
The keen eyes of the new guard had looked into hers with a directness
that seemed to penetrate her brain. That this scene was to be one of
the most interesting in the little comedy was proved by the fact that
two eager young women were hidden behind a heavy curtain in a corner of
the room. The Princess Yetive and the Countess Dagmar were there to
enjoy Beverly's first hour of authority, and she was aware of their
“Have they told you that you are to act as my especial guard and
escort?” she asked, with a queer flutter in her voice. Somehow this
tall fellow with the broad shoulders was not the same as the ragged
goat-hunter she had known at first.
“No, your highness,” said he, easily. “I have come for instructions.
It pleases me to know that I am to have a place of honor and trust such
“General Marlanx has told me that a vacancy exists, and I have
selected you to fill it. The compensation will be attended to by the
proper persons, and your duties will be explained to you by one of the
officers. This afternoon, I believe, you are to accompany me on my
visit to the fortress, which I am to inspect.”
“Very well, your highness,” he respectfully said. He was thinking of
Miss Calhoun, an American girl, although he called her “your highness.”
“May I be permitted to ask for instructions that can come only from
“Certainly,” she replied. His manner was more deferential than she
had ever known it to be, but he threw a bomb into her fine composure
with his next remark. He addressed her in the Graustark language:
“Is it your desire that I shall continue to address you in English?”
Beverly's face turned a bit red and her eyes wavered. By a wonderful
effort she retained her self-control, stammering ever so faintly when
she said in English:
“I wish you would speak English,” unwittingly giving answer to his
question. “I shall insist upon that. Your English is too good to be
Then he made a bold test, his first having failed. He spoke once
more in the native tongue, this time softly and earnestly.
“As you wish, your highness, but I think it is a most ridiculous
practice,” he said, and his heart lost none of its courage. Beverly
looked at him almost pathetically. She knew that behind the curtain two
young women were enjoying her discomfiture. Something told her that
they were stifling their mirth with dainty lace-bordered handkerchiefs.
“That will do, sir,” she managed to say firmly. “It's very nice of
you, but after this pay your homage in English,” she went on, taking a
long chance on his remark. It must have been complimentary, she
reasoned. As for Baldos, the faintest sign of a smile touched his lips
and his eyes were twinkling as he bent his head quickly. Franz was
right; she did not know a word of the Graustark language.
“I have entered the service for six months, your highness,” he said
in English. “You have honored me, and I give my heart as well as my arm
to your cause.”
Beverly, breathing easier, was properly impressed by this promise of
fealty. She was looking with pride upon the figure of her stalwart
“I hope you have destroyed that horrid black patch,” she said.
“It has gone to keep company with other devoted but deserted
friends,” he said, a tinge of bitterness in his voice.
“The uniform is vastly becoming,” she went on, realizing helplessly
that she was providing intense amusement for the unseen auditors.
“It shames the rags in which you found me.”
“I shall never forget them, Baldos,” she said, with a strange
earnestness in her voice.
“May I presume to inquire after the health of your good Aunt Fanny
and—although I did not see him—your Uncle Sam? “he asked, with a face
as straight and sincere as that of a judge. Beverly swallowed suddenly
and checked a laugh with some difficulty.
“Aunt Fanny is never ill. Some day I shall tell you more of Uncle
Sam. It will interest you.”
“Another question, if it please your highness. Do you expect to
return to America soon?”
This was the unexpected, but she met it with admirable composure.
“It depends upon the time when Prince Dantan resumes the throne in
Dawsbergen,” she said.
“And that day may never come,” said he, such mocking regret in his
voice that she looked upon him with newer interest.
“Why, I really believe you want to go to America,” she cried.
The eyes of Baldos had been furtively drawn to the curtain more than
once during the last few minutes. An occasional movement of the long
oriental hangings attracted his attention. It dawned upon him that the
little play was being overheard, whether by spies or conspirators he
knew not. Resentment sprang up in his breast and gave birth to a daring
that was as spectacular as it was confounding. With long, noiseless
strides, he reached the door before Beverly could interpose. She half
started from her chair, her eyes wide with dismay, her lips parted, but
his hand was already clutching the curtain. He drew it aside
Two startled women stood exposed to view, smiles dying on their
amazed faces. Their backs were against the closed door and two hands
clutching handkerchiefs dropped from a most significant altitude. One
of them flashed an imperious glance at the bold discoverer, and he knew
he was looking upon the real princess of Graustark. He did not lose his
composure. Without a tremor he turned to the American girl.
“Your highness,” he said clearly, coolly, “I fear we have spies and
eavesdroppers here. Is your court made up of—I should say, they are
doubtless a pair of curious ladies-in-waiting. Shall I begin my
service, your highness, by escorting them to yonder door?”
CHAPTER XIII. THE THREE PRINCES
Beverly gasped. The countess stared blankly at the new guard. Yetive
flushed deeply, bit her lip in hopeless chagrin, and dropped her eyes.
A pretty turn, indeed, the play had taken! Not a word was uttered for a
full half-minute; nor did the guilty witnesses venture forth from their
retreat. Baldos stood tall and impassive, holding the curtain aside. At
last the shadow of a smile crept into the face of the princess, but her
tones were full of deep humility when she spoke.
“We crave permission to retire, your highness,” she said, and there
was virtuous appeal in her eyes. “I pray forgiveness for this
indiscretion and implore you to be lenient with two miserable creatures
who love you so well that they forget their dignity.”
“I am amazed and shocked,” was all that Beverly could say. “You may
go, but return to me within an hour. I will then hear what you have to
Slowly, even humbly, the ruler of Graustark and her cousin passed
beneath the upraised arm of the new guard. He opened a door on the
opposite side of the room, and they went out, to all appearance
thoroughly crestfallen. The steady features of the guard did not relax
for the fraction of a second, but his heart was thumping disgracefully.
“Come here, Baldos,” commanded Beverly, a bit pale, but recovering
her wits with admirable promptness. “This is a matter which I shall
dispose of privately. It is to go no further, you are to understand.”
“Yes, your highness.”
“You may go now. Colonel Quinnox will explain everything,” she said
hurriedly. She was eager to be rid of him. As he turned away she
observed a faint but peculiar smile at the corner of his mouth.
“Come here, sir!” she exclaimed hotly. He paused, his face as sombre
as an owl's. “What do you mean by laughing like that?” she demanded. He
caught the fierce note in her voice, but gave it the proper
“Laughing, your highness?” he said in deep surprise. “You must be
mistaken. I am sure that I could not have laughed in the presence of a
“It must have been a—a shadow, then,” she retracted, somewhat
startled by his rejoinder. “Very well, then; you are dismissed.”
As he was about to open the door through which he had entered the
room, it swung wide and Count Marlanx strode in. Baldos paused
irresolutely, and then proceeded on his way without paying the
slightest attention to the commander of the army. Marlanx came to an
amazed stop and his face flamed with resentment.
“Halt, sir!” he exclaimed harshly. “Don't you know enough to salute
Baldos turned instantly, his figure straightening like a flash. His
eyes met those of the Iron Count and did not waver, although his face
went white with passion.
“And who are you, sir?” he asked in cold, steely tones. The count
“Your superior officer—that should be enough for you!” he half
hissed with deadly levelness.
“Oh, then I see no reason why I should not salute you, sir,” said
Baldos, with one of his rare smiles. He saluted his superior officer a
shade too elaborately and turned away. Marlanx's eyes glistened.
“Stop! Have I said you could go, sir? I have a bit of advice to—”
“My command to go comes from your superior, sir,” said
Baldos, with irritating blandness.
“Be patient, general,” cried Beverly in deep distress. “He does not
know any better. I will stand sponsor for him.” And Baldos went away
with a light step, his blood singing, his devil-may-care heart
satisfied. The look in her eyes was very sustaining. As he left the
castle he said aloud to himself with an easy disregard of the
“Well, it seems that I am to be associated with the devil as well as
with angels. Heavens! June is a glorious month.”
“Now, you promised you'd be nice to him, General Marlanx,” cried
Beverly the instant Baldos was out of the room. “He's new at this sort
of thing, you know, and besides, you didn't address him very politely
for an utter stranger.”
“The insolent dog,” snarled Marlanx, his self-control returning
slowly. “He shall be taught well and thoroughly, never fear, Miss
Calhoun. There is a way to train such recruits as he, and they never
forget what they have learned.”
“Oh, please don't be harsh with him,” she pleaded. The smile of the
Iron Count was not at all reassuring. “I know he will be sorry for what
he has done, and you—”
“I am quite sure he will be sorry,” said he, with a most agreeable
bow in submission to her appeal.
“Do you want to see Mr. Lorry?” she asked quickly. “I will send for
him, general.” She was at the door, impatient to be with the banished
“My business with Mr. Lorry can wait,” he began, with a smile meant
to be inviting, but which did not impress her at all pleasantly.
“Well, anyway, I'll tell him you're here,” she said, her hand on the
door-knob. “Will you wait here? Good-bye!” And then she was racing off
through the long halls and up broad stair-cases toward the boudoir of
the princess. There is no telling how long the ruffled count remained
in the ante-room, for the excited Beverly forgot to tell Lorry that he
There were half a dozen people in the room when Beverly entered
eagerly. She was panting with excitement. Of all the rooms in the grim
old castle, the boudoir of the princess was the most famously
attractive. It was really her home, the exquisite abiding place of an
exquisite creature. To lounge on her divans, to loll in the chairs, to
glide through her priceless rugs was the acme of indolent pleasure. Few
were they who enjoyed the privileges of “Little Heaven,” as Harry
Anguish had christened it on one memorable night, long before the
princess was Mrs. Grenfall Lorry.
“Now, how do you feel?” cried the flushed American girl,
pausing in the door to point an impressive finger at the princess, who
was lying back in a huge chair, the picture of distress and annoyance.
“I shall never be able to look that man in the face again,” came
dolefully from Yetive's humbled lips. Dagmar was all smiles and in the
fittest of humors. She was the kind of a culprit who loves the
punishment because of the crime.
“Wasn't it ridiculous, and wasn't it just too lovely?” she cried.
“It was extremely theatrical,” agreed Beverly, seating herself on
the arm of Yetive's chair and throwing a warm arm around her neck.
“Have you all heard about it?” she demanded, naively, turning to the
others, who unquestionably had had a jumbled account of the
“You got just what you deserved,” said Lorry, who was immensely
“I wonder what your august vagabond thinks of his princess and her
ladies-in-hiding?” mused Harry Anguish. The Count and Countess Halfont
were smiling in spite of the assault upon the dignity of the court.
“I'd give anything to know what he really thinks,” said the real
princess. “Oh, Beverly, wasn't it awful? And how he marched us out of
“I thought it was great,” said Beverly, her eyes glowing.
“Wasn't it splendid? And isn't he good looking?”
“He is good looking, I imagine, but I am no judge, dear. It was
utterly impossible for me to look at his face,” lamented the princess.
“What are you going to do with us?” asked Dagmar penitently.
“You are to spend the remainder of your life in a dungeon with
Baldos as guard,” decided Miss Calhoun.
“Beverly, dear, that man is no ordinary person,” said the princess,
“Of course he isn't. He's a tall, dark mystery.”
“I observed him as he crossed the terrace this morning,” said Lorry.
“He's a striking sort of chap, and I'll bet my head he's not what he
claims to be.”
“He claims to be a fugitive, you must remember,” said Beverly, in
“I mean that he is no common malefactor or whatever it may be. Who
and what do you suppose he is? I confess that I'm interested in the
fellow and he looks as though one might like him without half trying.
Why haven't you dug up his past history, Beverly? You are so keen about
“He positively refuses to let me dig,” explained Beverly. “I tried,
you know, but he—he—well, he squelched me.”
“Well, after all is said and done, he caught us peeping to-day, and
I am filled with shame,” said the princess. “It doesn't matter who he
is, he must certainly have a most unflattering opinion as to what
“And he is sure to know us sooner or later,” said the young
countess, momentarily serious.
“Oh, if it ever comes to that I shall be in a splendid position to
explain it all to him,” said Beverly. “Don't you see, I'll have to do a
lot of explaining myself?”
“Baron Dangloss!” announced the guard of the upper hall, throwing
open the door for the doughty little chief of police.
“Your highness sent for me?” asked he, advancing after the formal
salutation. The princess exhibited genuine amazement.
“I did, Baron Dangloss, but you must have come with the wings of an
eagle. It is really not more than three minutes since I gave the order
to Colonel Quinnox.” The baron smiled mysteriously, but volunteered no
solution. The truth is, he was entering the castle doors as the
messenger left them, but he was much too fond of effect to spoil a good
situation by explanations. It was a long two miles to his office in the
Tower. “Something has just happened that impels me to ask a few
questions concerning Baldos, the new guard.”
“May I first ask what has happened?” Dangloss was at a loss for the
meaning of the general smile that went around.
“It is quite personal and of no consequence. What do you know of
him? My curiosity is aroused. Now, be quiet, Beverly; you are as eager
to know as the rest of us.”
“Well, your highness, I may as well confess that the man is a puzzle
to me. He comes here a vagabond, but he certainly does not act like
one. He admits that he is being hunted, but takes no one into his
confidence. For that, he cannot be blamed.”
“Have you any reason to suspect who he is?” asked Lorry.
“My instructions were to refrain from questioning him,” complained
Dangloss, with a pathetic look at the original plotters. “Still, I have
made investigations along other lines.”
“And who is he?” cried Beverly, eagerly.
“I don't know,” was the disappointing answer. “We are confronted by
a queer set of circumstances. Doubtless you all know that young Prince
Dantan is flying from the wrath of his half-brother, our lamented
friend Gabriel. He is supposed to be in our hills with a half-starved
body of followers. It seems impossible that he could have reached our
northern boundaries without our outposts catching a glimpse of him at
some time. The trouble is that his face is unknown to most of us, I
among the others. I have been going on the presumption that Baldos is
in reality Prince Dantan. But last night the belief received a severe
“Yes?” came from several eager lips.
“My men who are watching the Dawsbergen frontier came in last night
and reported that Dantan had been seen by mountaineers no later than
Sunday, three days ago. These mountaineers were in sympathy with him,
and refused to tell whither he went. We only know that he was in the
southern part of Graustark three days ago. Our new guard speaks many
languages, but he has never been heard to use that of Dawsbergen. That
fact in itself is not surprising, for, of all things, he would avoid
his mother tongue. Dantan is part English by birth and wholly so by
cultivation. In that he evidently finds a mate in this Baldos.”
“Then, he really isn't Prince Dantan?” cried Beverly, as though a
cherished ideal had been shattered.
“Not if we are to believe the tales from the south. Here is another
complication, however. There is, as you know, Count Halfont, and
perhaps all of you, for that matter, a pretender to the throne of
Axphain, the fugitive Prince Frederic. He is described as young, good
looking, a scholar and the next thing to a pauper.”
“Baldos a mere pretender,” cried Beverly in real distress. “Never!”
“At any rate, he is not what he pretends to be,” said the baron,
with a wise smile.
“Then, you think he may be Prince Frederic?” asked Lorry, deeply
“I am inclined to think so, although another complication has
arisen. May it please your highness, I am in an amazingly tangled state
of mind,” admitted the baron, passing his hand over his brow.
“Do you mean that another mysterious prince has come to life?” asked
Yetive, her eyes sparkling with interest in the revelations.
“Early this morning a despatch came to me from the Grand Duke
Michael of Rapp-Thorberg, a duchy in western Europe, informing me that
the duke's eldest son had fled from home and is known to have come to
the far east, possibly to Graustark.”
“Great Scott!” exclaimed Anguish. “It never rains but it hails, so
here's hail to the princes three.”
“We are the Mecca for runaway royalty, it seems,” said Count
“Go on with the story, Baron Dangloss,” cried the princess. “It is
like a book.”
“A description of the young man accompanies the offer of a large
reward for information that may lead to his return home for
reconciliation. And—” here the baron paused dramatically.
“And what?” interjected Beverly, who could not wait.
“The description fits our friend Baldos perfectly!”
“You don't mean it?” exclaimed Lorry. “Then, he may be any one of
the three you have mentioned?”
“Let me tell you what the grand duke's secretary says. I have the
official notice, but left it in my desk. The runaway son of the grand
duke is called Christobal. He is twenty-seven years of age, speaks
English fluently, besides French and our own language. It seems that he
attended an English college with Prince Dantan and some of our own
young men who are still in England. Six weeks ago he disappeared from
his father's home. At the same time a dozen wild and venturous
retainers left the grand duchy. The party was seen in Vienna a week
later, and the young duke boldly announced that he was off to the east
to help his friend Dantan in the fight for his throne. Going on the
theory that Baldos is this same Christobal, we have only to provide a
reason for his preferring the wilds to the comforts of our cities. In
the first place, he knows there is a large reward for his apprehension
and he fears—our police. In the second place, he does not care to
direct the attention of Prince Dantan's foes to himself. He missed
Dantan in the hills and doubtless was lost for weeks. But the true
reason for his flight is made plain in the story that was printed
recently in Paris and Berlin newspapers. According to them, Christobal
rebelled against his father's right to select a wife for him. The grand
duke had chosen a noble and wealthy bride, and the son had selected a
beautiful girl from the lower walks of life. Father and son quarreled
and neither would give an inch. Christobal would not marry his father's
choice, and the grand duke would not sanction his union with the fair
Here Beverly exclaimed proudly, her face glowing: “He doesn't look
like the sort of man who could be bullied into marrying anybody if he
didn't want to.”
“And he strikes me as the sort who would marry any one he set his
heart upon having,” added the princess, with a taunting glance at Miss
“Umph!” sniffed Beverly defiantly. The baron went on with his
narrative, exhibiting signs of excitement.
“To lend color to the matter, Christobal's sweetheart, the daughter
of a game-warden, was murdered the night before her lover fled. I know
nothing of the circumstances attending the crime, but it is my
understanding that Christobal is not suspected. It is possible that he
is ignorant even now of the girl's fate.”
“Well, by the gods, we have a goodly lot of heroes about us,”
“But, after all,” ventured the Countess Halfont, “Baldos may be none
of these men.”
“Good heavens, Aunt Yvonne, don't suggest anything so distressing,”
said Yetive. “He must be one of them.”
“I suggest a speedy way of determining the matter,” said Anguish.
“Let us send for Baldos and ask him point blank who he is. I think it
is up to him to clear away the mystery.”
“No!” cried Beverly, starting to her feet.
“It seems to be the only way,” said Lorry.
“But I promised him that no questions should be asked,” said
Beverly, almost tearfully but quite resolutely. “Didn't I, yet—your
“Alas, yes!” said the princess, with a pathetic little smile of
resignation, but with loyalty in the clasp of her hand.
CHAPTER XIV. A VISIT AND ITS
That same afternoon Baldos, blissfully ignorant of the stir he had
created in certain circles, rode out for the first time as a member of
the Castle Guard. He and Haddan were detailed by Colonel Quinnox to act
as private escort to Miss Calhoun until otherwise ordered. If Haddan
thought himself wiser than Baldos in knowing that their charge was not
the princess, he was very much mistaken; if he enjoyed the trick that
was being played on his fellow guardsman, his enjoyment was as nothing
as compared to the pleasure Baldos was deriving from the situation. The
royal victoria was driven to the fortress, conveying the supposed
princess and the Countess Dagmar to the home of Count Marlanx. The two
guards rode bravely behind the equipage, resplendent in brilliant new
uniforms. Baldos was mildly surprised and puzzled by the homage paid
the young American girl. It struck him as preposterous that the entire
population of Edelweiss could be in the game to deceive him.
“Who is the princess's companion?” he inquired of Haddan, as they
left the castle grounds.
“The Countess Dagmar, cousin to her highness. She is the wife of Mr.
“I have seen her before,” said Baldos, a strange smile on his face.
The Countess Dagmar found it difficult at first to meet the eye of
the new guard, but he was so punctiliously oblivious that her courage
was restored. She even went so far as to whisper in Beverly's ear that
he did not remember her face, and probably would not recognize Yetive
as one of the eavesdroppers. The princess had flatly refused to
accompany them on the visit to the fortress because of Baldos. Struck
by a sudden impulse, Beverly called Baldos to the side of the vehicle.
“Baldos, you behaved very nicely yesterday in exposing the duplicity
of those young women,” she said.
“I am happy to have pleased your highness,” he said steadily.
“It may interest you to know that they ceased to be
ladies-in-waiting after that exposure.”
“Yes, your highness, it certainly is interesting,” he said, as he
fell back into position beside Haddan. During the remainder of the ride
he caught himself time after time gazing reflectively at the back of
her proud little head, possessed of an almost uncontrollable desire to
touch the soft brown hair.
“You can't fool that excellent young man much longer, my dear,” said
the countess, recalling the look in his dark eyes. The same thought had
been afflicting Beverly with its probabilities for twenty-four hours
Count Marlanx welcomed his visitors with a graciousness that awoke
wonder in the minds of his staff. His marked preference for the
American girl did not escape attention. Some of the bolder young
officers indulged in surreptitious grimaces, and all looked with more
or less compassion upon the happy-faced beauty from over the sea.
Marlanx surveyed Baldos steadily and coldly, deep disapproval in his
sinister eyes. He had not forgotten the encounter of the day before.
“I see the favorite is on guard,” he said blandly. “Has he told you
of the lesson in manners he enjoyed last night?” He was leading his
guests toward the quarters, Baldos and Haddan following. The new guard
could not help hearing the sarcastic remark.
“You didn't have him beaten?” cried Beverly, stopping short.
“No, but I imagine it would have been preferable. I talked
with him for half an hour,” said the general, laughing significantly.
When the party stopped at the drinking-fountain in the center of the
fort, Baldos halted near by. His face was as impassive as marble, his
eyes set straight before him, his figure erect and soldierly. An
occasional sarcastic remark by the Iron Count, meant for his ears, made
no impression upon the deadly composure of the new guard who had had
his lesson. Miss Calhoun was conscious of a vague feeling that
she had served Baldos an ill-turn when she put him into this position.
The count provided a light luncheon in his quarters after the ladies
had gone over the fortress. Beverly Calhoun, with all of a woman's
indifference to things material, could not but see how poorly equipped
the fort was as compared to the ones she had seen in the United States.
She and the countess visited the armory, the arsenal, and the repair
shops before luncheon, reserving the pleasures of the clubhouse, the
officers' quarters, and the parade-ground until afterwards. Count
Marlanx's home was in the southeast corner of the enclosure, near the
gates. Several of the officers lunched with him and the young ladies.
Marlanx was assiduous in his attention to Beverly Calhoun—so much so,
in fact, that the countess teased her afterwards about her conquest of
the old and well-worn heart. Beverly thought him extremely silly and
sentimental, much preferring him in the character of the harsh,
At regular intervals she saw the straight, martial form of Baldos
pass the window near which she sat. He was patrolling the narrow piazza
which fronted the house. Toward the close of the rather trying luncheon
she was almost unable to control the impulse to rush out and compel him
to relax that imposing, machine-like stride. She hungered for a few
minutes of the old-time freedom with him.
The Iron Count was showing her some rare antique bronzes he had
collected in the south. The luncheon was over and the countess had
strolled off toward the bastions with the young officers, leaving
Beverly alone with the host. Servants came in to clear the tables, but
the count harshly ordered them to wait until the guests had departed.
“It is the dearest thing I have seen,” said Beverly, holding a rare
old candlestick at arm's length and looking at it in as many ways as
the wrist could turn. Her loose sleeves ended just below the elbows.
The count's eyes followed the graceful curves of her white forearm with
an eagerness that was annoying.
“I prize it more dearly than any other piece in my collection,” he
said. “It came from Rome; it has a history which I shall try to tell
you some day, and which makes it almost invaluable. A German nobleman
offered me a small fortune if I would part with it.”
“And you wouldn't sell it?”
“I was saving it for an occasion, your highness,” he said, his
steely eyes glittering. “The glad hour has come when I can part with it
for a recompense far greater than the baron's gold.”
“Oh, isn't it lucky you kept it?” she cried. Then she turned her
eyes away quickly, for his gaze seemed greedily endeavoring to pierce
through the lace insertion covering her neck and shoulders. Outside the
window the steady tramp of the tall guard went on monotonously.
“The recompense of a sweet smile, a tender blush and the unguarded
thanks of a pretty woman. The candlestick is yours, Miss Calhoun,—if
you will repay me for my sacrifice by accepting it without
Slowly Beverly Calhoun set the candlestick down upon the table her
eyes meeting his with steady disdain.
“What a rare old jester you are, Count Marlanx,” she said without a
smile.” If I thought you were in earnest I should scream with laughter.
May I suggest that we join the countess? We must hurry along, you know.
She and I have promised to play tennis with the princess at three
o'clock.” The count's glare of disappointment lasted but a moment. The
diplomacy of egotism came to his relief, and he held back the gift for
another day, but not for another woman.
“It grieves me to have you hurry away. My afternoon is to be a dull
one, unless you permit me to watch the tennis game,” he said.
“I thought you were interested only in the game of war,” she said
“I stand in greater awe of a tennis ball than I do of a cannonball,
if it is sent by such an arm as yours,” and he not only laid his eyes
but his hand upon her bare arm. She started as if something had stung
her, and a cold shiver raced over her warm flesh. His eyes for the
moment held her spellbound. He was drawing the hand to his lips when a
shadow darkened the French window, and a saber rattled warningly.
Count Marlanx looked up instantly, a scowl on his face. Baldos stood
at the window in an attitude of alert attention. Beverly drew her arm
away spasmodically and took a step toward the window. The guard saw by
her eyes that she was frightened, but, if his heart beat violently, his
face was the picture of military stoniness.
“What are you doing there?” snarled the count.
“Did your highness call?” asked Baldos coolly.
“She did not call, fellow,” said the count with deadly menace in his
voice. “Report to me in half an hour. You still have something to
learn, I see.” Beverly was alarmed by the threat in his tones. She saw
what was in store for Baldos, for she knew quite as well as Marlanx
that the guard had deliberately intervened in her behalf.
“He cannot come in half an hour,” she cried quickly. “I have
something for him to do, Count Marlanx. Besides, I think I did
call.” Both men stared at her.
“My ears are excellent,” said Marlanx stiffly.
“I fancy Baldos's must be even better, for he heard me,” said
Beverly, herself once more. The shadow of a smile crossed the face of
“He is impertinent, insolent, your highness. You will report to me
tomorrow, sir, at nine o'clock in Colonel Quinnox's quarters. Now, go!”
commanded the count.
“Wait a minute, Baldos. We are going out, too. Will you open that
window for me?” Baldos gladly took it as a command and threw open the
long French window. She gave him a grateful glance as she stepped
through, and he could scarcely conceal the gleam of joy that shot into
his own eyes. The dark scowl on the count's face made absolutely no
impression upon him. He closed the window and followed ten paces behind
“Your guard is a priceless treasure,” said the count grimly.
“That's what you said about the candlestick,” said she sweetly.
She was disturbed by his threat to reprimand Baldos. For some time
her mind had been struggling with what the count had said about “the
lesson.” It grew upon her that her friend had been bullied and
humiliated, perhaps in the presence of spectators. Resentment fired her
curiosity into action. While the general was explaining one of the new
gun-carriages to the countess, Beverly walked deliberately over to
where Baldos was standing. Haddan's knowledge of English was
exceedingly limited, and he could understand but little of the rapid
conversation. Standing squarely in front of Baldos, she questioned him
in low tones.
“What did he mean when he said he had given you a lesson?” she
demanded. His eyes gleamed merrily.
“He meant to alarm your highness.”
“Didn't he give you a talking to?”
“He coached me in ethics.”
“You are evading the question, sir. Was he mean and nasty to you?
Tell me; I want to know.”
“Well, he said things that a soldier must endure. A civilian or an
equal might have run him through for it, your highness.” A flush rose
to his cheeks and his lips quivered ever so slightly. But Beverly saw
and understood. Her heart was in her eyes.
“That settles it,” she said rigidly. “You are not to report to him
at nine tomorrow.”
“But he will have me shot, your highness,” said he gladly.
“He will do nothing of the kind. You are my guard,” and her
eyes were gleaming dangerously. Then she rejoined the group, the
members of which had been watching her curiously. “Count Marlanx,” she
said, with entrancing dimples, “will you report to me at nine to-morrow
“I have an appointment,” he said slowly, but with understanding.
“But you will break it, I am sure,” she asserted confidently. “I
want to give you a lesson in—in lawn tennis.”
Later on, when the victoria was well away from the fort, Dagmar took
her companion to task for holding in public friendly discourse with a
member of the guard, whoever he might be.
“It is altogether contrary to custom, and—” but Beverly put her
hand over the critical lips and smiled like a guilty child.
“Now, don't scold,” she pleaded, and the countess could go no
The following morning Count Marlanx reported at nine o'clock with
much better grace than he had suspected himself capable of exercising.
What she taught him of tennis on the royal courts, in the presence of
an amused audience, was as nothing to what he learned of strategy as it
can be practiced by a whimsical girl. Almost before he knew it she had
won exemption for Baldos, that being the stake for the first set of
singles. To his credit, the count was game. He took the wager, knowing
that he, in his ignorance, could not win from the blithe young expert
in petticoats. Then he offered to wager the brass candlestick against
her bracelet. She considered for a moment and then, in a spirit of
enthusiasm, accepted the proposition. After all, she coveted the
candlestick. Half an hour later an orderly was riding to the fort with
instructions to return at once with Miss Calhoun's candlestick. It is
on record that they were “love” sets, which goes to prove that Beverly
took no chances.
Count Marlanx, puffing and perspiring, his joints dismayed and his
brain confused, rode away at noon with Baron Dangloss. Beverly, quite
happy in her complete victory, enjoyed a nap of profound sweetness and
then was ready for her walk with the princess. They were strolling
leisurely about the beautiful grounds, safe in the shade of the trees
from the heat of the July sun, when Baron Dangloss approached.
“Your royal highness,” he began, with his fierce smile, “may I beg a
“It has to do with Baldos, I'll take oath,” said Beverly, with
“Yes, with your guard. Yesterday he visited the fortress. He went in
an official capacity, it is true, but he was privileged to study the
secrets of our defense with alarming freedom. It would not surprise me
to find that this stranger has learned everything there is to know
about the fort.” His listeners were silent. The smiles left their
faces. “I am not saying that he would betray us—”
“No, no!” protested Beverly.
“—but he is in a position to give the most valuable information to
an enemy. An officer has just informed me that Baldos missed not a
detail in regard to the armament, or the location of vital spots in the
construction of the fortress.”
“But he wouldn't be so base as to use his knowledge to our undoing,”
cried Yetive seriously.
“We only know that he is not one of us. It is not beyond reason that
his allegiance is to another power, Dawsbergen, for instance. Count
Marlanx is not at all in sympathy with him, you are aware. He is
convinced that Baldos is a man of consequence, possibly one of our
bitterest enemies, and he hates him. For my own part, I may say that I
like the man. I believe he is to be trusted, but if he be an agent of
Volga or Gabriel, his opportunity has come. He is in a position to make
accurate maps of the fort and of all our masked fortifications along
the city walls.” Beyond a doubt, the baron was worried.
“Neither am I one of you,” said Beverly stoutly. “Why shouldn't I
prove to be a traitress?”
“You have no quarrel with us, Miss Calhoun,” said Dangloss.
“If anything happens, then, I am to be blamed for it,” she cried in
deep distress. “I brought him to Edelweiss, and I believe in him.”
“For his own sake, your highness, and Miss Calhoun, I suggest that
no opportunity should be given him to communicate with the outside
world. We cannot accuse him, of course, but we can protect him.
I come to ask your permission to have him detailed for duty only in
places where no suspicion can attach to any of his actions.”
“You mean inside the city walls?” asked Yetive.
“Yes, your highness, and as far as possible from the fortress.”
“I think it is a wise precaution. Don't be angry, Beverly,” the
princess said gently. “It is for his own sake, you see. I am acting on
the presumption that he is wholly innocent of any desire to betray us.”
“It would be easy for someone high in position to accuse and convict
him,” said Dangloss meaningly.
“And it would be just like someone, too,” agreed Beverly, her
thoughts, with the others', going toward none but one man “high in
Later in the day she called Baldos to her side as they were riding
in the castle avenue. She was determined to try a little experiment of
“Baldos, what do you think of the fortress?” she
“I could overthrow it after half an hour's bombardment, your
highness,” he answered, without thinking. She started violently.
“Is it possible? Are there so many weak points?” she went on,
catching her breath.
“There are three vital points of weakness, your highness. The
magazine can be reached from the outside if one knows the lay of the
land; the parade-ground exposes the ammunition building to certain
disadvantages, and the big guns could be silenced in an hour if an
enemy had the sense first to bombard from the elevation northeast of
“Good heavens!” gasped poor Beverly. “Have you studied all this
“I was once a real soldier, your highness,” he said, simply. “It was
impossible for me not to see the defects in your fort.”
“You—you haven't told anyone of this, have you?” she cried,
white-faced and anxious.
“No one but your highness. You do not employ me as a tale-bearer, I
“I did not mean to question your honor,” she said. “Would you mind
going before the heads of the war department and tell them just what
you have told me? I mean about the weak spots.”
“If it is your command, your highness,” he said quietly, but he was
“You may expect to be summoned then, so hold yourself in readiness.
“Yes, your highness?”
“You need say nothing to them of our having talked the matter over
beforehand—unless they pin you down to it, you know.”
CHAPTER XV. THE TESTING OF BALDOS
A few hours later, all was dark and silent within the castle. On the
stone walks below, the steady tread of sentinels rose on the still air;
in the hallways the trusted guardsmen glided about like spectres or
stood like statues. An hour before the great edifice had been bright
and full of animation; now it slumbered.
It was two o'clock. The breath of roses scented the air, the gurgle
of fountains was the only music that touched the ear. Beverly Calhoun,
dismissing Aunt Fanny, stepped from her window out upon the great stone
balcony. A rich oriental dressing-gown, loose and comfortable, was her
costume. Something told her that sleep would be a long time coming, and
an hour in the warm, delightful atmosphere of the night was more
attractive than the close, sleepless silence of her own room. Every
window along the balcony was dark, proving that the entire household
had retired to rest.
She was troubled. The fear had entered her head that the castle folk
were regretting the advent of Baldos, that everyone was questioning the
wisdom of his being in the position he occupied through her devices.
Her talk with him did much to upset her tranquillity. That he knew so
much of the fortress bore out the subtle suspicions of Dangloss and
perhaps others. She was troubled, not that she doubted him, but that if
anything went wrong an accusation against him, however unjust, would be
difficult to overcome. And she would be to blame, in a large degree.
For many minutes she sat in the dark shadow of a great pillar, her
elbows upon the cool balustrade, staring dreamily into the star-studded
vault above. Far away in the air she could see the tiny yellow lights
of the monastery, lonely sentinel on the mountain top. From the heights
near that abode of peace and penitence an enemy could destroy the
fortress to the south. Had not Baldos told her so? One big gun would do
the work if it could be taken to that altitude. Baldos could draw a
perfect map of the fortress. He could tell precisely where the shells
should fall. And already the chief men in Edelweiss were wondering who
he was and to what end he might utilize his knowledge. They were
watching him, they were warning her.
For the first time since she came to the castle, she felt a sense of
loneliness, a certain unhappiness. She could not shake off the feeling
that she was, after all, alone in her belief in Baldos. Her heart told
her that the tall, straightforward fellow she had met in the hills was
as honest as the day. She was deceiving him, she realized, but he was
misleading no one. Off in a distant part of the castle ground she could
see the long square shadow that marked the location of the barracks and
messroom. There he was sleeping, confidently believing in her and her
power to save him from all harm. Something in her soul cried out to him
that she would be staunch and true, and that he might sleep without a
tremor of apprehensiveness.
Suddenly she smiled nervously and drew back into the shadow of the
pillar. It occurred to her that he might be looking across the moon-lit
park, looking directly at her through all that shadowy distance. She
was conscious of a strange glow in her cheeks and a quickening of the
blood as she pulled the folds of her gown across her bare throat.
“Not the moon, nor the stars, nor the light in St. Valentine's, but
the black thing away off there on the earth,” said a soft voice behind
her, and Beverly started as if the supernatural had approached her. She
turned to face the princess, who stood almost at her side.
“Yetive! How did you get here?”
“That is what you are looking at, dear,” went on Yetive, as if
completing her charge. “Why are you not in bed?”
“And you? I thought you were sound asleep long ago,” murmured
Beverly, abominating the guilty feeling that came over her. The
princess threw her arm about Beverly's shoulder.
“I have been watching you for half an hour,” she said gently. “Can't
two look at the moon and stars as well as one? Isn't it my grim old
castle? Let us sit here together, dear, and dream awhile.”
“You dear Yetive,” and Beverly drew her down beside her on the
cushions. “But, listen: I want you to get something out of your head. I
was not looking at anything in particular.”
“Beverly, I believe you were thinking of Baldos,” said the other,
her fingers straying fondly across the girl's soft hair.
“Ridiculous!” said Beverly, conscious for the first time that he was
seldom out of her thoughts. The realization came like a blow, and her
eyes grew very wide out there in the darkness.
“And you are troubled on his account. I know it, dear. You—”
“Well, Yetive, why shouldn't I be worried? I brought him here
against his will,” protested Beverly. “If anything should happen to
him—” she shuddered involuntarily.
“Don't be afraid, Beverly. I have as much confidence in him as you
have. His eyes are true. Grenfall believes in him, too, and so does Mr.
Anguish. Gren says he would swear by him, no matter who he is.”
“But the others?” Beverly whispered.
“Baron Dangloss is his friend, and so is Quinnox. They know a man. The count is different.”
“I loathe that old wretch!”
“Hush! He has not wronged you in any way.”
“But he has been unfair and mean to Baldos.”
“It is a soldier's lot, my dear.”
“But he may be Prince Dantan or Frederic or the other one, don't you
know,” argued Beverly, clenching her hands firmly.
“In that event, he would be an honorable soldier, and we have
nothing to fear in him. Neither of them is our enemy. It is the
possibility that he is not one of them that makes his presence here
“I don't want to talk about him,” said Beverly, but she was
disappointed when the princess obligingly changed the subject.
Baldos was not surprised, scarcely more than interested, when a day
or two later, he was summoned to appear before the board of strategy.
If anyone had told him, however, that on a recent night a pair of
dreamy gray eyes had tried to find his window in the great black
shadow, he might have jumped in amazement and—delight. For at that
very hour he was looking off toward the castle, and his thoughts were
of the girl who drew back into the shadow of the pillar.
The Graustark ministry had received news from the southern frontier.
Messengers came in with the alarming and significant report that
Dawsbergen was strengthening her fortifications in the passes and
moving war supplies northward. It meant that Gabriel and his people
expected a fight and were preparing for it. Count Halfont hastily
called the ministers together, and Lorry and the princess took part in
their deliberations. General Marlanx represented the army; and it was
he who finally asked to have Baldos brought before the council. The
Iron Count plainly intimated that the new guard was in a position to
transmit valuable information to the enemy. Colonel Quinnox sent for
him, and Baldos was soon standing in the presence of Yetive and her
advisers. He looked about him with a singular smile. The one whom he
was supposed to regard as the princess was not in the council chamber.
Lorry opened the examination at the request of Count Halfont, the
premier. Baldos quietly answered the questions concerning his present
position, his age, his term of enlistment, and his interpretations of
the obligations required of him.
“Ask him who he really is,” suggested the Iron Count sarcastically.
“We can expect but one answer to that question,” said Lorry, “and
that is the one which he chooses to give.”
“My name is Baldos—Paul Baldos,” said the guard, but he said it in
such a way that no one could mistake his appreciation of the fact that
he could give one name as well as another and still serve his own
“That is lie number one,” observed Marlanx loudly. Every eye was
turned upon Baldos, but his face did not lose its half-mocking
expression of serenity.
“Proceed with the examination, Mr. Lorry” said Count Halfont,
interpreting a quick glance from Yetive.
“Are you willing to answer any and all questions we may ask in
connection with your observations since you became a member of the
castle guard?” asked Lorry.
“Did you take especial care to study the interior of the fortress
when you were there several days ago?”
“Have you discussed your observations with anyone since that time?”
“With her highness, the princess,” said Baldos, without a quiver.
There was a moment's silence, and furtive looks were cast in the
direction of Yetive, whose face was a study. Almost instantaneously the
entire body of listeners understood that he referred to Beverly
Calhoun. Baldos felt that he had been summoned before the board at the
instigation of his fair protectress.
“And your impressions have gone no further?”
“They have not, sir. It was most confidential.”
“Could you accurately reproduce the plans of the fortress?”
“I think so. It would be very simple.”
“Have you studied engineering?”
“And you could scientifically enumerate the defects in the
construction of the fort?”
“It would not be very difficult, sir.”
“It has come to our ears that you consider the fortress weak in
several particulars. Have you so stated at any time?”
“I told the princess that the fortress is deplorably weak. In fact,
I think I mentioned that it could be taken with ease.” He was not
looking at Count Marlanx, but he knew that the old man's eyes were
flaming. Then he proceeded to tell the board how he could overcome the
fortress, elaborating on his remarks to Beverly. The ministers listened
in wonder to the words of this calm, indifferent young man.
“Will you oblige us by making a rough draft of the fort's interior?”
asked Lorry, after a solemn pause. Baldos took the paper and in
remarkably quick time drew the exact lay of the fortress. The sketch
went the rounds and apprehensive looks were exchanged by the ministers.
“It is accurate, by Jove,” exclaimed Lorry. “I doubt if a dweller in
the fort could do better. You must have been very observing.”
“And very much interested,” snarled Marlanx.
“Only so far as I imagined my observations might be of benefit to
someone else,” said Baldos coolly. Again the silence was like death.
“Do you know what you are saying, Baldos?” asked Lorry, after a
“Certainly, Mr. Lorry. It is the duty of any servant of her highness
to give her all that he has in him. If my observations can be of help
to her, I feel in duty bound to make the best of them for her sake, not
for my own.”
“Perhaps you can suggest modifications in the fort,” snarled
Marlanx. “Why don't you do it, sir, and let us have the benefit of your
superior intelligence? No, gentlemen, all this prating of loyalty need
not deceive us,” he cried, springing to his feet. “The fellow is
nothing more nor less than an infernal spy—and the Tower is the place
for him! He can do no harm there.”
“If it were my intention to do harm, gentlemen, do you imagine that
I should withhold my information for days?” asked Baldos. “If I am a
spy, you may rest assured that Count Marlanx's kindnesses should not
have been so long disregarded. A spy does not believe in delays.”
“My—my kindnesses?” cried Marlanx. “What do you mean, sir?”
“I mean this. Count Marlanx,” said Baldos, looking steadily into the
eyes of the head of the army. “It was kind and considerate of you to
admit me to the fortress—no matter in what capacity, especially at a
critical time like this. You did not know me, you had no way of telling
whether my intentions were honest or otherwise, and yet I was permitted
to go through the fort from end to end. No spy could wish for greater
generosity than that.”
An almost imperceptible smile went round the table, and every
listener but one breathed more freely. The candor and boldness of the
guard won the respect and confidence of all except Marlanx. The Iron
Count was white with anger. He took the examination out of Lorry's
hands, and plied the stranger with insulting questions, each calm
answer making him more furious than before. At last, in sheer
impotence, he relapsed into silence, waving his hand to Lorry to
indicate that he might resume.
“You will understand, Baldos, that we have some cause for
apprehension,” said Lorry, immensely gratified by the outcome of the
tilt. “You are a stranger; and, whether you admit it or not, there is
reason to believe that you are not what you represent yourself to be.”
“I am a humble guard at present, sir, and a loyal one. My life is
yours should I prove otherwise.”
Yetive whispered something in Lorry's ear at this juncture. She was
visibly pleased and excited. He looked doubtful for an instant, and
then apparently followed her suggestion, regardless of consequences.
“Would you be willing to utilize your knowledge as an engineer by
suggesting means to strengthen the fortress?” The others stared in
fresh amazement. Marlanx went as white as death.
“Never!” he blurted out hoarsely.
“I will do anything the princess commands me to do,” said Baldos
“You mean that you serve her only?”
“I serve her first, sir. If she were here she could command me to
die, and there would be an end to Baldos,” and he smiled as he said it.
The real princess looked at him with a new, eager expression, as if
something had just become clear to her. There was a chorus of coughs
and a round of sly looks.
“She could hardly ask you to die,” said Yetive, addressing him for
the first time.
“A princess is like April weather, madam,” said Baldos, with rare
humor, and the laugh was general, Yetive resolved to talk privately
with this excellent wit before the hour was over. She was confident
that he knew her to be the princess.
“I would like to ask the fellow another question,” said Marlanx,
fingering his sword-hilt nervously. “You say you serve the princess. Do
you mean by that that you imagine your duties as a soldier to comprise
dancing polite attendance within the security of these walls?”
“I believe I enlisted as a member of the castle guard, sir. The duty
of the guard is to protect the person of the ruler of Graustark, and to
do that to the death.”
“It is my belief that you are a spy. You can show evidence of good
faith by enlisting to fight against Dawsbergen and by shooting
to kill,” said the count, with a sinister gleam in his eye.
“And if I decline to serve in any other capacity than the one I
“Then I shall brand you as a spy and a coward.”
“You have already called me a spy, your excellency. It will not make
it true, let me add, if you call me a coward. I refuse to take up arms
against either Dawsbergen or Axphain.”
The remark created a profound sensation.
“Then you are employed by both instead of one!” shouted the Iron
“I am employed as a guard for her royal highness,” said Baldos, with
a square glance at Yetive, “and not as a fighter in the ranks. I will
fight till death for her, but not for Graustark.”
CHAPTER XVI. ON THE WAY TO ST.
“By Jove, I like that fellow's coolness,” said Lorry to Harry
Anguish, after the meeting. “He's after my own heart. Why, he treats us
as though we were the suppliants, he the alms-giver. He is playing a
game, I'll admit, but he does it with an assurance that delights me.”
“He is right about that darned old fort,” said Anguish. “His
knowledge of such things proves conclusively that he is no ordinary
“Yetive had a bit of a talk with him just now,” said Lorry, with a
reflective smile. “She asked him point blank if he knew who she was. He
did not hesitate a second. 'I remember seeing you in the audience
chamber recently.' That was a facer for Yetive. 'I assure you that it
was no fault of mine that you saw me,' she replied. 'Then it must have
been your friend who rustled the curtains?' said the confounded
bluffer. Yetive couldn't keep a straight face. She laughed and then he
laughed. 'Some day you may learn more about me,' she said to him. 'I
sincerely trust that I may, madam,' said he, and I'll bet my hat he was
enjoying it better than either of us. Of course, he knows Yetive is the
princess. It's his intention to serve Beverly Calhoun, and he couldn't
do it if he were to confess that he knows the truth. He's no fool.”
Baldos was not long in preparing plans for the changes in the
fortress. They embodied a temporary readjustment of the armament and
alterations in the ammunition house. The gate leading to the river was
closed and the refuse from the fort was taken to the barges by way of
the main entrance. There were other changes suggested for immediate
consideration, and then there was a general plan for the modernizing of
the fortress at some more convenient time. Baldos laconically observed
that the equipment was years behind the times. To the amazement of the
officials, he was able to talk intelligently of forts in all parts of
the world, revealing a wide and thorough knowledge and extensive
inspection. He had seen American as well as European fortifications.
The Graustark engineers went to work at once to perfect the simple
changes he advised, leaving no stone unturned to strengthen the place
before an attack could be made.
Two, three weeks went by and the new guard was becoming an old story
to the castle and army folk. He rode with Beverly every fair day and he
looked at her window by night from afar off in the sombre barracks. She
could not dissipate the feeling that he knew her to be other than the
princess, although he betrayed himself by no word or sign. She was
enjoying the fun of it too intensely to expose it to the risk of
destruction by revealing her true identity to him. Logically, that
would mean the end of everything. No doubt he felt the same and kept
his counsel. But the game could not last forever, that was certain. A
month or two more, and Beverly would have to think of the return to
His courage, his cool impudence, his subtle wit charmed her more
than she could express. Now she was beginning to study him from a
standpoint peculiarly and selfishly her own. Where recently she had
sung his praises to Yetive and others, she now was strangely reticent.
She was to understand another day why this change had come over her.
Stories of his cleverness came to her ears from Lorry and Anguish and
even from Dangloss. She was proud, vastly proud of him in these days.
The Iron Count alone discredited the ability and the conscientiousness
of the “mountebank,” as he named the man who had put his nose out of
joint. Beverly, seeing much of Marlanx, made the mistake of chiding him
frankly and gaily about this aversion. She even argued the guard's case
before the head of the army, imprudently pointing out many of his
superior qualities in advocating his cause. The count was learning
forbearance in his old age. He saw the wisdom of procrastination.
Baldos was in favor, but someday there would come a time for his
In the barracks he was acquiring fame. Reports went forth with
unbiased freedom. He established himself as the best swordsman in the
service, as well as the most efficient marksman. With the foils and
sabers he easily vanquished the foremost fencers in high and low
circles. He could ride like a Cossack or like an American cowboy. Of
them all, his warmest admirer was Haddan, the man set to watch him for
the secret service. It may be timely to state that Haddan watched in
The princess, humoring her own fancy as well as Beverly's foibles,
took to riding with her high-spirited young guest on many a little
jaunt to the hills. She usually rode with Lorry or Anguish, cheerfully
assuming the subdued position befitting a lady-in-waiting apparently
restored to favor on probation. She enjoyed Beverly's unique position.
In order to maintain her attitude as princess, the fair young deceiver
was obliged to pose in the extremely delectable attitude of being
“How can you expect the paragon to make love to you, dear, if he
thinks you are another man's wife?” Yetive asked, her blue eyes beaming
with the fun of it all.
“Pooh!” sniffed Beverly. “You have only to consult history to find
the excuse. It's the dear old habit of men to make love to queens and
get beheaded for it. Besides, he is not expected to make love to me.
How in the world did you get that into your head?”
On a day soon after the return of Lorry and Anguish from a trip to
the frontier, Beverly expressed a desire to visit the monastery of St.
Valentine, high on the mountain top. It was a long ride over the
circuitous route by which the steep incline was avoided and it was
necessary for the party to make an early start. Yetive rode with Harry
Anguish and his wife the countess, while Beverly's companion was the
gallant Colonel Quinnox. Baldos, relegated to the background, brought
up the rear with Haddan.
For a week or more Beverly had been behaving toward Baldos in the
most cavalier fashion. Her friends had been teasing her; and, to her
own intense amazement, she resented it. The fact that she felt the
sting of their sly taunts was sufficient to arouse in her the
distressing conviction that he had become important enough to prove
embarrassing. While confessing to herself that it was a bit treacherous
and weak, she proceeded to ignore Baldos with astonishing persistency.
Apart from the teasing, it seemed to her of late that he was growing a
shade too confident.
He occasionally forgot his differential air, and relaxed into a very
pleasing but highly reprehensible state of friendliness. A touch of the
old jauntiness cropped out here and there, a tinge of the old irony
marred his otherwise perfect mien as a soldier. His laugh was freer,
his eyes less under subjugation, his entire personality more arrogant.
It was time, thought she resentfully, that his temerity should meet
some sort of check.
And, moreover, she had dreamed of him two nights in succession.
How well her plan succeeded may best be illustrated by saying that
she now was in a most uncomfortable frame of mind. Baldos refused to be
properly depressed by his misfortune. He retired to the oblivion she
provided and seemed disagreeably content. Apparently, it made very
little difference to him whether he was in or out of favor. Beverly was
in high dudgeon and low spirits.
The party rode forth at an early hour in the morning. It was hot in
the city, but it looked cold and bleak on the heights. Comfortable
wraps were taken along, and provision was made for luncheon at an inn
half way up the slope. Quinnox regaled Beverly with stories in which
Grenfall Lorry was the hero and Yetive the heroine. He told her of the
days when Lorry, a fugitive with a price upon his head, charged with
the assassination of Prince Lorenz, then betrothed to the princess, lay
hidden in the monastery while Yetive's own soldiers hunted high and low
for him. The narrator dwelt glowingly upon the trip from the monastery
to the city walls one dark night when Lorry came down to surrender
himself in order to shield the woman he loved, and Quinnox himself
piloted him through the underground passage into the very heart of the
castle. Then came the exciting scene in which Lorry presented himself
as a prisoner, with the denouement that saved the princess and won for
the gallant American the desire of his heart.
“What a brave fellow he was!” cried Beverly, who never tired of
hearing the romantic story.
“Ah, he was wonderful, Miss Calhoun. I fought him to keep him from
surrendering. He beat me, and I was virtually his prisoner when we
appeared before the tribunal.”
“It's no wonder she loved him and—married him.”
“He deserved the best that life could give, Miss Calhoun.”
“You had better not call me Miss Calhoun, Colonel Quinnox,” said
she, looking back apprehensively. “I am a highness once in a while,
don't you know?”
“I implore your highness's pardon!” said he gaily.
The riders ahead had come to a standstill and were pointing off into
the pass to their right. They were eight or ten miles from the city
gates and more than half way up the winding road that ended at the
monastery gates. Beverly and Quinnox came up with them and found all
eyes centered on a small company of men encamped in the rocky defile a
hundred yards from the main road.
It needed but a glance to tell her who comprised the unusual
company. The very raggedness of their garments, the unforgetable
disregard for consequences, the impudent ease with which they faced
poverty and wealth alike, belonged to but one set of men—the vagabonds
of the Hawk and Raven. Beverly went a shade whiter; her interest in
everything else flagged, and she was lost in bewilderment. What freak
of fortune had sent these men out of the fastnesses into this
dangerously open place?
She recognized the ascetic Ravone, with his student's face and
beggar's garb. Old Franz was there, and so were others whose faces and
heterogeneous garments had become so familiar to her in another day.
The tall leader with the red feather, the rakish hat and the black
patch alone was missing; from the picture.
“It's the strangest-looking crew I've ever seen,” said Anguish.
“They look like pirates.”
“Or gypsies” suggested Yetive. “Who are they, Colonel Quinnox? What
are they doing here?” Quinnox was surveying the vagabonds with a
critical, suspicious eye.
“They are not robbers or they would be off like rabbits” he said
reflectively. “Your highness, there are many roving bands in the hills,
but I confess that these men are unlike any I have heard about. With
your permission, I will ride down and question them.”
“Do, Quinnox. I am most curious.”
Beverly sat very still and tense. She was afraid to look at Baldos,
who rode up as Quinnox started into the narrow defile, calling to the
escort to follow. The keen eyes of the guard caught the situation at
once. Miss Calhoun shot a quick glance at him as he rode up beside her.
His face was impassive, but she could see his hand clench the
bridle-rein, and there was an air of restraint in his whole bearing.
“Remember your promise,” he whispered hoarsely. “No harm must come
to them.” Then he was off into the defile. Anguish was not to be left
behind. He followed, and then Beverly, more venturesome and vastly more
interested than the others, rode recklessly after. Quinnox was
questioning the laconic Ravone when she drew rein. The vagabonds seemed
to evince but little interest in the proceedings. They stood away in
disdainful aloofness. No sign of recognition passed between them and
In broken, jerky sentences, Ravone explained to the colonel that
they were a party of actors on their way to Edelweiss, but that they
had been advised to give the place a wide berth. Now they were making
the best of a hard journey to Serros, where they expected but little
better success. He produced certain papers of identification which
Quinnox examined and approved, much to Beverly's secret amazement. The
princess and the colonel exchanged glances and afterwards a few words
in subdued tones. Yetive looked furtively at Beverly and then at Baldos
as if to enquire whether these men were the goat-hunters she had come
to know by word of mouth. The two faces were hopelessly non-committal.
Suddenly Baldos's horse reared and began to plunge as if in terror,
so that the rider kept his seat only by means of adept horsemanship.
Ravone leaped forward and at the risk of injury clutched the plunging
steed by the bit. Together they partially subdued the animal and Baldos
swung to the ground at Ravone's side. Miss Calhoun's horse in the
meantime had caught the fever. He pranced off to the roadside before
she could get him under control.
She was thus in a position to observe the two men on the ground.
Shielded from view by the body of the horse, they were able to put the
finishing touches to the trick Baldos had cleverly worked. Beverly
distinctly saw the guard and the beggar exchange bits of paper, with
glances that meant more than the words they were unable to utter.
Baldos pressed into Ravone's hand a note of some bulk and received
in exchange a mere slip of paper. The papers disappeared as if by
magic, and the guard was remounting his horse before he saw that the
act had been detected. The expression of pain and despair in Beverly's
face sent a cold chill over him from head to foot.
She turned sick with apprehension. Her faith had received a stunning
blow. Mutely she watched the vagabonds withdraw in peace, free to go
where they pleased. The excursionists turned to the main road. Baldos
fell back to his accustomed place, his imploring look wasted. She was
strangely, inexplicably depressed for the rest of the day.
CHAPTER XVII. A NOTE TRANSLATED
She was torn by conflicting emotions. That the two friends had
surreptitiously exchanged messages, doubtless by an arrangement
perfected since he had entered the service—possibly within the
week—could not be disputed. When and how had they planned the
accidental meeting? What had been their method of communication? And,
above all, what were the contents of the messages exchanged? Were they
of a purely personal nature, or did they comprehend injury to the
principality of Graustark? Beverly could not, in her heart, feel that
Baldos was doing anything inimical to the country he served, and yet
her duty and loyalty to Yetive made it imperative that the transaction
should be reported at once. A word to Quinnox and Ravone would be
seized and searched for the mysterious paper. This, however, looked
utterly unreasonable, for the vagabonds were armed and in force, while
Yetive was accompanied by but three men who could be depended upon.
Baldos, under the conditions, was not to be reckoned upon for support.
On the other hand, if he meant no harm, it would be cruel, even fatal,
to expose him to this charge of duplicity. And while she turned these
troublesome alternatives over in her mind, the opportunity to act was
lost. Ravone and his men were gone, and the harm, if any was intended,
From time to time she glanced back at the guard. His face was
imperturbable, even sphinx-like in its steadiness. She decided to hold
him personally to account. At the earliest available moment she would
demand an explanation of his conduct, threatening him if necessary. If
he proved obdurate there was but one course left open to her. She would
deliver him up to the justice he had outraged. Hour after hour went by,
and Beverly suffered more than she could have told. The damage was
done, and the chance to undo it was slipping farther and farther out of
her grasp. She began to look upon herself as the vilest of traitors.
There was no silver among the clouds that marred her thoughts that
It was late in the day when the party returned to the castle, tired
out. Beverly was the only one who had no longing to seek repose after
the fatiguing trip. Her mind was full of unrest. It was necessary to
question Baldos at once. There could be no peace for her until she
learned the truth from him. The strain became so great that at last she
sent word for him to attend her in the park. He was to accompany the
men who carried the sedan chair in which she had learned to sit with a
delightful feeling of being in the eighteenth century.
In a far corner of the grounds, now gray in the early dusk, Beverly
bade the bearers to set down her chair and leave her in quiet for a few
minutes. The two men withdrew to a respectful distance, whereupon she
called Baldos to her side. Her face was flushed with anxiety.
“You must tell me the truth about that transaction with Ravone,” she
said, coming straight to the point.
“I was expecting this, your highness,” said he quietly. The shadows
of night were falling, but she could distinguish the look of anxiety in
his dark eyes.
“Well?” she insisted impatiently.
“You saw the notes exchanged?”
“Yes, yes, and I command you to tell me what they contained. It was
the most daring thing I—”
“You highness, I cannot tell you what passed between us. It would be
treacherous, “he said firmly. Beverly gasped in sheer amazement.
“Treacherous? Good heaven, sir, to whom do you owe allegiance—to me
or to Ravone and that band of tramps?” she cried, with eyes afire.
“To both, your highness,” he answered so fairly that she was for the
moment abashed. “I am loyal to you—loyal to the heart's core, and yet
I am loyal to that unhappy band of tramps, as you choose to call them.
They are my friends. You are only my sovereign.”
“And you won't tell me what passed between you? “she said, angered
by this epigrammatic remark.
“I cannot and be true to myself.”
“Oh? you are a glorious soldier,” she exclaimed, with fierce sarcasm
in her voice. “You speak of being true! I surprise you in the very act
“Stay, your highness!” he said coldly. “You are about to call me a
spy and a traitor. Spare me, I implore you, that humiliation. I have
sworn to serve you faithfully and loyally. I have not deceived you, and
I shall not. Paul Baldos has wronged no man, no woman. What passed
between Ravone and myself concerns us only. It had nothing to do with
the affairs of Graustark.”
“Of course you would say that. You wouldn't be fool enough to tell
the truth,” cried she hotly. “I am the fool! I have trusted you and if
anything goes wrong I alone am to blame for exposing poor Graustark to
danger. Oh, why didn't I cry out this afternoon?”
“I knew you would not,” he said, with cool unconcern.
“Insolence! What do you mean by that?” she cried in confusion.
“In your heart you knew I was doing no wrong. You shielded me then
as you have shielded me from the beginning.”
“I don't see why I sit here and let you talk to me like that,” she
said, feeling the symptoms of collapse. “You have not been fair with
me, Baldos. You are laughing at me now and calling me a witless little
fool. You—you did something to-day that shakes my faith to the very
bottom. I never can trust you again. Good heaven, I hate to confess
to—to everyone that you are not honest.”
“Your highness!” he implored, coming close to the chair and bending
over her. “Before God, I am honest with you. Believe me when I say that
I have done nothing to injure Graustark. I cannot tell you what it was
that passed between Ravone and me, but I swear on my soul that I have
not been disloyal to my oath. Won't you trust me? Won't you believe?”
His breath was fanning her ear, his voice was eager; she could feel the
intensity of his eyes.
“Oh, I don't—don't know what to say to you,” she murmured. “I have
been so wrought up with fear and disappointment. You'll admit that it
was very suspicious, won't you? “she cried, almost pleadingly.
“Yes, yes,” he answered. His hand touched her arm, perhaps
unconsciously. She threw back her head to give him a look of rebuke.
Their eyes met, and after a moment both were full of pleading. Her lips
parted, but the words would not come. She was afterwards more than
thankful for this, because his eyes impelled her to give voice to
amazing things that suddenly rushed to her head.
“I want to believe you,” she whispered softly.
“You must—you do! I would give you my life. You have it now. It is
in your keeping, and with it my honor. Trust me, I beseech you. I have
“I brought you here—” she began, defending him involuntarily. “But,
Baldos, you forget that I am the princess!” She drew away in sudden
shyness, her cheeks rosy once more, her eyes filling with the most
distressingly unreasonable tears. He did not move for what seemed hours
to her. She heard the sharp catch of his breath and felt the repression
that was mastering some unwelcome emotion in him.
Lights were springing into existence in all parts of the park.
Beverly saw the solitary window in the monastery far away, and her eyes
fastened on it as if for sustenance in this crisis of her life—this
moment of surprise—this moment when she felt him laying hands upon the
heart she had not suspected of treason. Twilight was upon them; the sun
had set and night was rushing up to lend unfair advantage to the forces
against which they were struggling. The orchestra in the castle was
playing something soft and tender—oh, so far away.
“I forget that I am a slave, your highness,” he said at last, and
his voice thrilled her through and through. She turned quickly and to
her utter dismay found his face and eyes still close to hers, glowing
in the darkness.
“Those men—over there,” she whispered helplessly. “They are looking
“Now, I thank God eternally,” he cried softly, “You do not punish
me, you do not rebuke me. God, there is no night!”
“You—you must not talk like that,” she cried, pulling herself
together suddenly. “I cannot permit it, Baldos. You forget who you are,
“Ah, yes, your highness,” he said, before he stood erect. “I forget
that I was a suspected traitor. Now I am guilty of lese majeste.”
Beverly felt herself grow hot with confusion.
“What am I to do with you?” she cried in perplexity, her heart
beating shamefully. “You swear you are honest, and yet you won't tell
me the truth. Now, don't stand like that! You are as straight as a
ramrod, and I know your dignity is terribly offended. I may be foolish,
but I do believe you intend no harm to Graustark. You cannot
be a traitor.”
“I will some day give my life to repay you for those words, your
highness,” he said. Her hand was resting on the side of the chair.
Something warm touched it, and then it was lifted resistlessly. Hot,
passionate lips burned themselves into the white fingers, and a glow
went into every fiber of her body.
“Oh!” was all she could say. He gently released the hand and threw
up his chin resolutely.
“I am almost ready to die,” he said. She laughed for the
first time since they entered the park.
“I don't know how to treat you,” she said in a helpless flutter.”
You know a princess has many trials in life.”
“Not the least of which is womanhood.”
“Baldos,” she said after a long pause. Something very disagreeable
had just rushed into her brain. “Have you been forgetting all this time
that the Princess Yetive is the wife of Grenfall Lorry?”
“It has never left my mind for an instant. From the bottom of my
heart I congratulate him. His wife is an angel as well as a princess.”
“Well, in the code of morals, is it quite proper to be so loyal
to another man's wife?” she asked, and then she trembled. He was
supposed to know her as the wife of Grenfall Lorry, and yet he had
boldly shown his love for her.
“It depends altogether on the other man's wife,” he said, and she
looked up quickly. It was too dark to see his face, but something told
her to press the point no further. Deep down in her heart she was
beginning to rejoice in the belief that he had found her out. If he
still believed her to be the real princess, then he was—but the
subject of conversation, at least, had to be changed.
“You say your message to Ravone was of a purely personal nature,”
“Yes, your highness.” She did not like the way in which he said
“your highness.” It sounded as if he meant it.
“How did you know that you were to see him to-day?”
“We have waited for this opportunity since last week. Franz was in
the castle grounds last Thursday.”
“Good heavens! You don't mean it!”
“Yes, your highness. He carried a message to me from Ravone. That is
why Ravone and the others waited for me in the hills.”
“You amaze me!”
“I have seen Franz often,” he confessed easily. “He is an excellent
“So it would seem. We must keep a lookout for him. He is the
go-between for you all, I see.”
“Did you learn to say 'you all' in America?” he asked. Her heart
gave a great leap. There was something so subtle in the query that she
was vastly relieved.
“Never mind about that, sir. You won't tell me what you said in your
note to Ravone.”
“Well, he gave you one in return. If you are perfectly sincere,
Baldos, you will hand that note over to me. It shall go no farther, I
swear to you, if, as you vow, it does not jeopardize Graustark. Now,
sir, prove your loyalty and your honesty.”
He hesitated for a long time. Then from an inner pocket he drew
forth a bit of paper.
“I don't see why it has not been destroyed,” he said regretfully.
“What a neglectful fool I have been!”
“You might have said it had been destroyed,” she said, happy because
he had not said it.
“But that would have been a lie. Read it, your highness, and return
it to me. It must be destroyed.”
“It is too dark to read it here.” Without a word he handed the paper
to her and called the chair bearers, to whom he gave instructions that
brought her speedily beneath one of the park lamps. She afterwards
recalled the guilty impulse which forced her to sit on the tell-tale
note while the men were carrying her along in the driveway. When it was
quite safe she slyly opened the missive. His hand closed over hers, and
the note, and he bent close once more.
“My only fear is that the test will make it impossible for me to
kiss your hand again,” said he in a strained voice. She looked up in
“Then it is really something disloyal?”
“I have called it a test, your highness,” he responded
“Well, we'll see,” she said, and forthwith turned her eyes to the
all-important paper. A quick flush crossed her brow; her eyes blinked
hopelessly. The note was written in the Graustark language!
“I'll read it later, Baldos. This is no place for me to be reading
notes, don't you know? Really, it isn't. I'll give it back to you
to-morrow,” she was in haste to say.
An inscrutable smile came over his face.
“Ravone's information is correct, I am now convinced,” he said
slowly. “Pray, your highness, glance over it now, that I may destroy it
at once,” he persisted.
“The light isn't good.”
“It seems excellent.”
“And I never saw such a miserable scrawl as this. He must have
written it on horseback and at full gallop,”
“It is quite legible, your highness.”
“I really cannot read the stuff. You know his handwriting. Read it
to me. I'll trust you to read It carefully.”
“This is embarrassing, your highness, but I obey, of course, if you
command. Here is what Ravone says:
“'We have fresh proof that she is not the princess, but the American
girl. Be exceedingly careful that she does not lead you into any
admissions. The Americans are tricky. Have little to say to her, and
guard your tongue well. We are all well and are hoping for the best.'“
CHAPTER XVIII. CONFESSIONS AND
Beverly was speechless.
“Of course, your highness,” said Baldos, deep apology in his voice,
“Ravone is woefully misinformed. He is honest in his belief, and you
should not misjudge his motives. How he could have been so blind as to
confound you with that frisky American girl—but I beg your pardon. She
is to be your guest. A thousand pardons, your highness.”
She had been struck dumb by the wording of the note, but his
apparently sincere apology for his friend set her every emotion into
play once more. While he was speaking, her wits were forming themselves
for conflict. She opened the campaign with a bold attack. “You—you
believe me to be the princess, sure 'nough, don't you?” But with all
her bravery, she was not able to look him in the face.
“How can you doubt it, your highness? Would I be serving you in the
present capacity if I believed you to be anyone else?”
“Ravone's warning has not shaken your faith in me?”
“It has strengthened it. Nothing could alter the facts in the case.
I have not, since we left Ganlook, been in doubt as to the identity of
“It seems to me that you are beating around the bush. I'll come
straight to the point. How long have you known that I am not the
princess of Graustark?”
“What!” he exclaimed, drawing back in well-assumed horror. “Do you
mean—are you jesting? I beg of you, do not jest. It is very serious
with me.” His alarm was so genuine that she was completely deceived.
“I am not jesting,” she half whispered, turning very cold. “Have you
thought all along that I am the princess—that I am Grenfall Lorry's
“You told me that you were the princess.”
“But I've never said that I was—was anyone's wife.”
There was a piteous appeal in her voice and he was not slow to
notice it and rejoice. Then his heart smote him.
“But what is to become of me if you are not the princess?” he asked
after a long pause. “I can no longer serve you. This is my last day in
the castle guard.”
“You are to go on serving me—I mean you are to retain your place in
the service,” she hastened to say. “I shall keep my promise to you.”
How small and humble she was beginning to feel. It did not seem so
entertaining, after all, this pretty deception of hers. Down in his
heart, underneath the gallant exterior, what was his opinion of her?
Something was stinging her eyes fiercely, and she closed them to keep
back the tears of mortification.
“Miss Calhoun,” he said, his manner changing swiftly, “I have felt
from the first that you are not the princess of Graustark. I knew
it an hour after I entered Edelweiss. Franz gave me a note at Ganlook,
but I did not read it until I was a member of the guard.”
“You have known it so long?” she cried joyously. “And you have
trusted me? You have not hated me for deceiving you?”
“I have never ceased to regard you as my sovereign,” he said
“But just a moment ago you spoke of me as a frisky American girl,”
she said resentfully.
“I have used that term but once, while I have said 'your highness' a
thousand times. Knowing that you were Miss Calhoun, I could not have
“I fancy I have no right to criticise you,” she humbly admitted.
“After all, it does not surprise me that you were not deceived. Only an
imbecile could have been fooled all these weeks. Everyone said that you
were no fool. It seems ridiculous that it should have gone to this
length, doesn't it?”
“Not at all, your highness. I am not—”
“You have the habit, I see,” she smiled.
“I have several months yet to serve as a member of the guard.
Besides, I am under orders to regard you as the princess. General
Marlanx has given me severe instructions in that respect.”
“You are willing to play the game to the end?” she demanded, more
gratified than she should have been.
“Assuredly, yes. It is the only safeguard I have. To alter my belief
publicly would expose me to—to—”
“To what, Baldos?”
“To ridicule, for one thing, and to the generous mercies of Count
Marlanx. Besides, it would deprive me of the privilege I mentioned a
moment ago—the right to kiss your hand, to be your slave and to do
homage to the only sovereign I can recognize. Surely, you will not
subject me to exile from the only joys that life holds for me. You have
sought to deceive me, and I have tried to deceive you. Each has found
the other out, so we are quits. May we not now combine forces in the
very laudible effort to deceive the world? If the world doesn't know
that we know, why, the comedy may be long drawn out and the climax be
made the more amusing.”
“I'm afraid there was a touch of your old-time sarcasm in that
remark,” she said. “Yes, I am willing to continue the comedy. It seems
the safest way to protect you—especially from General Marlanx. No one
must ever know, Baldos; it would be absolutely pitiful. I am glad, oh,
so glad, that you have known all the time. It relieves my mind and my
“Yes,” he said gently; “I have known all along that you were not Mr.
Lorry's wife.” He had divined her thought and she flushed hotly. “You
are still a princess, however. A poor goat-hunter can only look upon
the rich American girl as a sovereign whom he must worship from far
“Oh, I'm not so rich as all that,” she cried.” Besides, I think it
is time for a general clearing-up of the mysteries. Are you Prince
Dantan, Prince Frederic, or that other one—Christobal somebody? Come,
be fair with me.”
“It seems that all Edelweiss looks upon me as a prince in disguise.
You found me in the hills—”
“No; you found me. I have not forgotten, sir.”
“I was a vagabond and a fugitive. My friends are hunted as I am. We
have no home. Why everyone should suspect me of being a prince I cannot
understand. Every roamer in the hills is not a prince. There is a price
upon my head, and there is a reward for the capture of every man who
was with me in the pass. My name is Paul Baldos, Miss Calhoun. There is
no mystery in that. If you were to mention it in a certain city, you
would quickly find that the name of Baldos is not unknown to the people
who are searching for him. No, your highness, I regret exceedingly that
I must destroy the absurd impression that I am of royal blood. Perhaps
I am spoiling a pretty romance, but it cannot be helped. I was Baldos,
the goat-hunter; I am now Baldos, the guard. Do you think that I would
be serving as a Graustark guard if I were any one of the men you
Beverly listened in wonder and some disappointment, it must be
confessed. Somehow a spark of hope was being forever extinguished by
this straightforward denial. He was not to be the prince she had seen
in dreams. “You are not like anyone else,” she said.” That is why we
thought of you as—as—as—”
“As one of those unhappy creatures they call princes? Thank fortune,
your highness, I am not yet reduced to such straits. My exile will come
only when you send me away.”
They were silent for a long time. Neither was thinking of the hour,
or the fact that her absence in the castle could not be unnoticed.
Night had fallen heavily upon the earth. The two faithful
chair-bearers, respectful but with wonder in their souls, stood afar
off and waited. Baldos and Beverly were alone in their own little
“I think I liked you better when you wore the red feather and that
horrid patch of black,” she said musingly.
“And was a heart-free vagabond,” he added, something imploring in
“An independent courtier, if you please, sir,” she said severely.
“Do you want me to go back to the hills? I have the patch and the
feather, and my friends are—”
“No! Don't suggest such a thing—yet.” She began the protest eagerly
and ended it in confusion.
“Alas, you mean that some day banishment is not unlikely?”
“You don't expect to be a guard all your life, do you?”
“Not to serve the princess of Graustark, I confess. My aim is much
higher. If God lets me choose the crown I would serve, I shall enlist
for life. The crown I would serve is wrought of love, the throne I
would kneel before is a heart, the sceptre I would follow is in the
slender hand of a woman. I could live and die in the service of my own
choosing. But I am only the humble goat-hunter whose hopes are
phantoms, whose ideals are conceived in impotence.”
“That was beautiful,” murmured Beverly, looking up, fascinated for
“Oh, that I had the courage to enlist,” he cried, bending low once
more. She felt the danger in his voice, half tremulous with some thing
more than loyalty, and drew her hand away from a place of instant
jeopardy. It was fire that she was playing with, she realized with a
start of consciousness. Sweet as the spell had grown to be, she saw
that it must be shattered.
“It is getting frightfully late,” she sharply exclaimed. “They'll
wonder where I've gone to. Why, it's actually dark.”
“It has been dark for half an hour, your highness,” said he, drawing
himself up with sudden rigidness that distressed her. “Are you going to
return to the castle?”
“Yes. They'll have out a searching party pretty soon if I don't
“You have been good to me to-day,” he said thoughtfully. “I shall
try to merit the kindness. Let me—”
“Oh, please don't talk in that humble way! It's ridiculous! I'd
rather have you absolutely impertinent, I declare upon my honor I
would. Don't you remember how you talked when you wore the red feather?
Well, I liked it.”
Baldos laughed easily, happily. His heart was not very humble,
though his voice and manner were.
“Red is the color of insolence, you mean.”
“It's a good deal jauntier than blue,” she declared.
“Before you call the bearers, Miss—your highness, I wish to retract
something I said awhile ago,” he said very seriously.
“I should think you would,” she responded, utterly misinterpreting
“You asked me to tell you what my message to Ravone contained and I
refused. Subsequently the extent of his message to me led us into a
most thorough understanding. It is only just and right that you should
know what I said to him.”
“I trust you, Baldos,” she protested simply.
“That is why I tell this to you. Yesterday, your highness, the
castle guard received their month's pay. You may not know how well we
are paid, so I will say that it is ten gavvos to each. The envelope
which I gave to Ravone contained my wages for the past six weeks. They
need it far more than I do. There was also a short note of good cheer
to those poor comrades of mine, and the assurance that one day our luck
may change and starvation be succeeded by plenty. And, still more, I
told him that I knew you to be Miss Calhoun and that you were my angel
of inspiration. That was all, your highness.”
“Thank you, Baldos, for telling me,” she said softly. “You have made
me ashamed of myself.”
“On the contrary, I fear that I have been indulging in mock heroics.
Truth and egotism—like a salad—require a certain amount of dressing.”
“Since you are Baldos, and not a fairy prince, I think you may
instruct the men to carry me back, being without the magic tapestry
which could transplant me in a whiff. Goodness, who's that?”
Within ten feet of the sedan chair and directly behind the tall
guard stood a small group of people. He and Beverly, engrossed in each
other, had not heard their approach. How long they had been silent
spectators of the little scene only the intruders knew. The startled,
abashed eyes of the girl in the chair were not long in distinguishing
the newcomers. A pace in front of the others stood the gaunt, shadowy
form of Count Marlanx.
Behind him were the Princess Yetive, the old prime minister, and
CHAPTER XIX. THE NIGHT FIRES
“Why, good evening. Is that you?” struggled somewhat hysterically
through Beverly's lips. Not since the dear old days of the stolen jam
and sugar-bits had she known the feelings of a culprit caught
red-handed. The light from the park lamps revealed a merry, accusing
smile on the face of Yetive, but the faces of the men were serious.
Marlanx was the picture of suppressed fury.
“It is the relief expedition, your highness,” said Yetive warmly.
“We thought you were lost in the wilds of the jungle.”
“She is much better protected than we could have imagined,” said the
Iron Count, malevolently mild and polite.
“Can't I venture into the park without being sent for?” asked
Beverly, ready to fly into the proper rage. The pink had left her
cheeks white. “I am proud to observe, however, that the relief
expedition is composed of the most distinguished people in all
Graustark. Is there any significance to be attached to the
“Can't we also go strolling in the park, my dear?” plaintively asked
“It depends upon where we stroll, I fancy,” suggested Marlanx
derisively. Beverly flashed a fierce look at the head of the army. “By
the way, Baron Dangloss, where is the incomparable Haddan?”
Baldos shot a startled glance at the two men and in an instant
comprehension came to him. He knew the secret of Haddan's constant
companionship. An expression of bitter scorn settled upon his mouth,
Dangloss mumbled a reply, at which the Iron Count laughed
“I am returning to the castle,” said Beverly coldly, “Pray don't let
me interfere with your stroll. Or is it possible that you think it
necessary to deliver me safely to my nurse, now that you have found
“Don't be angry, dear,” whispered Yetive, coming close to her side.”
I will tell you all about it later on. It was all due to Count
“It was all done to humiliate me,” replied Beverly, indignation
surpassing confusion at last. “I hate all of you.”
“Oh, Beverly!” whispered the princess, in distress.
“Well, perhaps you were led into it,” retracted Beverly, half
mollified. “Look at that old villain whispering over there. No wonder
his wives up and died. They just had to do it. I hate all but
you and Count Halfont and Baron Dangloss,” which left but one
“And Baldos?” added Yetive, patting her hand.
“I wish you'd be sensible,” cried Beverly, most ungraciously, and
Yetive's soft laugh irritated her. “How long had you been listening to
“Not so much as the tiniest part of a minute,” said Yetive,
recalling another disastrous eavesdropping. “I am much wiser than when
Baldos first came to serve you. We were quite a distance behind Count
Marlanx, I assure you.”
“Then he heard something?” asked Beverly anxiously.
“He has been in a detestable mood ever since we rejoined him. Could
he have heard anything disagreeable?”
“No; on the contrary, it was quite agreeable.”
All this time Baldos was standing at attention a few paces off, a
model soldier despite the angry shifting of his black eyes. He saw that
they had been caught in a most unfortunate position. No amount of
explaining could remove the impression that had been forced upon the
witnesses, voluntary or involuntary as the case might be. Baldos could
do nothing to help her, while she was compelled to face the suspicions
of her best friends. At best it could be considered nothing short of a
clandestine meeting, the consequences of which she must suffer, not he.
In his heated brain he was beginning to picture scandal with all the
disgusting details that grow out of evil misrepresentation.
Count Halfont separated himself from the group of three and advanced
to the sedan-chair. Marlanx and Dangloss were arguing earnestly in low
“Shall we return, your highness?” asked Halfont, addressing both
with one of his rarest smiles. “If I remember aright, we were to dine
en famille to-night, and it is well upon the hour. Besides, Count
Marlanx is a little distressed by your absent-mindedness, Miss Beverly,
and I fancy he is eager to have it out with you.”
“My absent-mindedness? What is it that I have forgotten?” asked
Beverly, puckering her brow.
“That's the trouble, dear,” said Yetive. “You forgot your promise to
teach him how to play that awful game called poker. He has waited for
you at the castle since six o'clock. It is now eight. Is it any wonder
that he led the searching party? He has been on nettles for an hour and
“Goodness, I'll wager he's in a temper!” exclaimed Beverly, with no
remorse, but some apprehension.
“It would be wisdom to apologize to him,” suggested Yetive, and her
uncle nodded earnestly.
“All right. I think I can get him into good humor without half
trying. Oh, Count Marlanx! Come here, please. You aren't angry with me,
are you? Wasn't it awful for me to run away and leave you to play
solitaire instead of poker? But, don't you know, I was so wretchedly
tired after the ride, and I knew you wouldn't mind if I—” and so she
ran glibly on, completely forestalling him, to the secret amusement of
the others. Nevertheless, she was nervous and embarrassed over the
situation. There was every reason to fear that the Iron Count had heard
and seen enough to form a pretty good opinion of what had passed
between herself and Baldos in this remote corner of the park. A deep
sense of shame was taking possession of her.
Marlanx, smiling significantly, looked into her brave little face,
and permitted her to talk on until she had run out of breath and
composure. Then he bowed with exaggerated gallantry and informed her
that he was hers to command, and that it was not for him to forgive but
to accept whatever was her gracious pleasure. He called upon the
chair-bearers and they took up their burden. Beverly promptly changed
her mind and concluded to walk to the castle. And so they started off,
the chair going ahead as if out of commission forever. Despite her
efforts to do so, the American girl (feeling very much abused, by the
way), was unsuccessful in the attempt to keep the princess at her side.
Yetive deliberately walked ahead with Halfont and Dangloss. It seemed
to Beverly that they walked unnecessarily fast and that Marlanx was
provokingly slow. Baldos was twenty paces behind, as was his custom.
“Is it necessary for me to ask you to double the number of lessons I
am to have?” Marlanx asked. He was quite too close to her side to
“Can't you learn in one lesson? Most Americans think they know all
about poker after the first game.”
“I am not so quick-witted, your highness.”
“Far be it from me to accelerate your wits, Count Marlanx. It might
not be profitable.”
“You might profit by losing, you know,” he ventured, leaning still
closer, “Poker is not the only game of chance. It was chance that gave
me a winning hand this evening.”
“I don't understand.”
“It shall be my pleasure to teach you in return for instructions I
am to have. I have tried to teach your excellent guard one phase of the
game. He has not profited, I fear. He has been blind enough to pick a
losing hand in spite of my advice. It is the game of hearts.” Beverly
could not but understand. She shrank away with a shudder. Her wits did
not desert her, however.
“I know the game,” she said steadily. “One's object is to cast off
all the hearts. I have been very lucky at the game, Count Marlanx.”
“Umph!” was his ironical comment. “Ah, isn't this a night for
lovers?” he went on, changing tack suddenly. “To stroll in the shadows,
where even the moon is blind, is a joy that love alone provides. Come,
fair mistress, share this joy with me.”
With that his hand closed over her soft arm above the elbow and she
was drawn close to his side. Beverly's first shock of revulsion was
succeeded by the distressing certainty that Baldos was a helpless
witness of this indignity. She tried to jerk her arm away, but he held
“Release my arm, sir!” she cried, hoarse with passion.
“Call your champion, my lady. It will mean his death. I have
evidence that will insure his conviction and execution within an hour.
Nothing could Call him, I say, and—”
“I will call him. He is my sworn protector, and I will
command him to knock you down if you don't go away,” she flared,
“At his peril—”
“Baldos!” she called, without a second's hesitation. The guard came
up with a rush just as Marlanx released her arm and fell away with a
“Your highness!” cried Baldos, who had witnessed everything.
“Are you afraid to die?” she demanded briefly; and clearly.
“That is all,” she said, suddenly calm. “I merely wanted to prove it
to Count Marlanx.” Tact had come to her relief most opportunely. Like a
flash she saw that a conflict between the commander of the army and a
guard could have but one result and that disastrous to the latter. One
word from her would have ended everything for Baldos. She saw through
the Iron Count's ruse as if by divine inspiration and profited where he
least expected her to excel in shrewdness. Marlanx had deliberately
invited the assault by the guard. His object had been to snare Baldos
into his own undoing, and a horrible undoing it would have been. One
blow would have secured the desired result. Nothing could have saved
the guard who had struck his superior officer. But Beverly thought in
“To die is easy, your highness. You have but to ask it of me,” said
Baldos, whose face was white and drawn.
“She has no intention of demanding such a pleasant sacrifice"
observed Count Marlanx, covering his failure skilfully. “Later on,
perhaps, she may sign your death warrant. I am proud to hear, sir, that
a member of my corps has the courage to face the inevitable, even
though he be an alien and unwilling to die on the field of battle. You
have my compliments, sir. You have been on irksome duty for several
hours and must be fatigued as well as hungry. A soldier suffers many
deprivations, not the least of which is starvation in pursuit of his
calling. Mess is not an unwelcome relief to you after all these arduous
hours. You may return to the barracks at once. The princess is under my
care for the remainder of the campaign.”
Baldos looked first at her and then at the sarcastic old general.
Yetive and her companions were waiting for them at the fountain, a
hundred yards ahead.
“You may go, Baldos,” said Beverly in low tones.
“I am not fatigued nor—” he began eagerly.
“Go!” snarled Marlanx. “Am I to repeat a command to you? Do you
ignore the word of your mistress?” There was a significant sneer in the
way he said it.
“Mistress?” gasped Baldos, his eye blazing, his arm half raised.
“Count Marlanx!” implored Beverly, drawing herself to her full
height and staring at him like a wounded thing.
“I humbly implore you not to misconstrue the meaning of the term,
your highness,” said the Count affably, “Ah, you have dropped
something. Permit me. It is a note of some description, I think.”
He stooped quickly—too quickly—and recovered from the ground at
her feet the bit of paper which had fallen from her hand. It was the
note from Ravone to Baldos which Beverly had forgotten in the
excitement of the encounter.
“Count Marlanx, give me that paper!” demanded Beverly breathlessly.
“Is it a love-letter? Perhaps it is intended for me. At any rate,
your highness, it is safe against my heart for the time being. When we
reach the castle I shall be happy to restore it. It is safer with me.
Come, we go one way and—have you not gone, sir?” in his most sarcastic
tone to the guard. Beverly was trembling.
“No, I have not; and I shall not go until I see you obey the command
of her highness. She has asked you for that piece of paper,” said
Baldos, standing squarely in front of Marlanx.
“Insolent dog! Do you mean to question my—”
“Give over that paper!”
“If you strike me, fellow, it will be—”
“If I strike you it will be to kill, Count Marlanx. The paper, sir.”
Baldos towered over the Iron Count and there was danger in his
dare-devil voice. “Surely, sir, I am but obeying your own instructions.
'Protect the princess and all that is hers, with your life,' you have
said to me.”
“Oh, I wish you hadn't done this, Baldos,” cried Beverly,
“You have threatened my life. I shall not forget it, fool. Here is
the precious note, your highness, with my condolences to the writer.”
Marlanx passed the note to her and then looked triumphantly at the
guard. “I daresay you have done all you can, sir. Do you wish to add
“What can one do when dealing with his superior and finds him a
despicable coward?” said Baldos, with cool irony. “You are reputed to
be a brave soldier. I know that to be false or I would ask you to draw
the sword you carry and—” He was drawing his sword as he spoke.
“Baldos!” implored Beverly. Her evident concern infuriated Marlanx.
In his heart he knew Baldos to be a man of superior birth and a foeman
not to be despised from his own station. Carried away by passion, he
flashed his sword from its sheath.
“You have drawn on me, sir,” he snarled. “I must defend myself
against even such as you. You will find that I am no coward. Time is
short for your gallant lover, madam.”
Before she could utter a word of protest the blades had clashed and
they were hungry for blood. It was dark in the shadows of the trees and
the trio were quite alone with their tragedy. She heard Baldos laugh
recklessly in response to Marlanx's cry of:
“Oh, the shame of fighting with such carrion as you!”
“Don't jest at a time like this, count,” said the guard, softly.
“Remember that I lose, no matter which way it goes. If you kill me I
lose, if I beat you I lose. Remember, you can still have me shot for
insubordination and conduct unbecoming—”
“Stop!” almost shrieked Beverly. At risk of personal injury she
rushed between the two swordsmen. Both drew back and dropped their
points. Not a dozen passes had been made.
“I beg your highness's pardon,” murmured Baldos, but he did not
sheathe his sword.
“He forced it upon me,” cried Marlanx triumphantly. “You were
witness to it all. I was a fool to let it go as far as this. Put up
your sword until another day—if that day ever comes to you.”
“He will have you shot for this, Baldos,” cried Beverly in her
terror. Baldos laughed bitterly.
“Tied and blindfolded, too, your highness, to prove that he is a
brave man and not a coward. It was short but it was sweet. Would that
you had let the play go on. There was a spice in it that made life
worth living and death worth the dying. Have you other commands for me,
your highness?” His manner was so cool and defiant that she felt the
tears spring to her eyes.
“Only that you put up your sword and end this miserable affair by
going to your—your room.”
“It is punishment enough. To-morrow's execution can be no harder.”
Marlanx had been thinking all this time. Into his soul came the
thrill of triumph, the consciousness of a mighty power. He saw the
chance to benefit by the sudden clash and he was not slow to seize it.
“Never fear, my man,” he said easily, “it won't be as bad as that. I
can well afford to overlook your indiscretion of to-night. There will
be no execution, as you call it. This was an affair between men not
between man and the state. Our gracious referee is to be our judge. It
is for her to pardon and to condemn. It was very pretty while it lasted
and you are too good a swordsman to be shot. Go your way, Baldos, and
remember me as Marlanx the man, not Marlanx the general. As your
superior officer, I congratulate and commend you upon the manner in
which you serve the princess.”
“You will always find me ready to fight and to die for her” said
Baldos gravely. “Do you think you can remember that. Count Marlanx?”
“I have an excellent memory,” said the count steadily. With a
graceful salute to Beverly, Baldos turned and walked away in the
“A perfect gentleman, Miss Calhoun, but a wretched soldier,” said
“He is a hero,” she said quietly, a great calmness coming over her.
“Do you mean it when you say you are not going to have him punished? He
did only what a man should do, and I glory in his folly.”
“I may as well tell you point blank that you alone can save him. He
does not deserve leniency. It is in my power and it is my province to
have him utterly destroyed, not only for this night's work, but for
other and better reasons. I have positive proof that he is a spy. He
knows I have this proof. That is why he would have killed me just now.
It is for you to say whether he shall meet the fate of a spy or go
unscathed. You have but to exchange promises with me and the estimable
guardsman goes free—but he goes from Edelweiss forever. To-day he met
the enemy's scouts in the hills, as you know quite well. Messages were
exchanged, secretly, which you do not know of, of course. Before
another day is gone I expect to see the results of his treachery. There
may be manifestations to-night. You do not believe me, but wait and see
if I am not right. He is one of Gabriel's cleverest spies.”
“I do not believe it. You shall not accuse him of such things,” she
cried. “Besides, if he is a spy why should you shield him for my sake?
Don't you owe it to Graustark to expose—”
“Here is the princess,” said he serenely. “Your highness,”
addressing Yetive, “Miss Calhoun has a note which she refuses to let
anyone read but you. Now, my dear young lady, you may give it directly
into the hands of her highness.”
Beverly gave him a look of scorn, but without a second's hesitation
placed the missive in Yetive's hand. The Iron Count's jaw dropped, and
he moistened his lips with his tongue two or three times. Something
told him that a valuable chance had gone.
“I shall be only too happy to have your highness read the result of
my first lesson in the Graustark language,” she said, smiling gaily
upon the count.
Two men in uniform came rushing up to the party, manifestly excited.
Saluting the general, both began to speak at once.
“One at a time,” commanded the count. “What is it?”
Other officers of the guard and a few noblemen from the castle came
up, out of breath.
“We have discerned signal fires in the hills, your excellency,” said
one of the men from the fort. “There is a circle of fires and they mean
something important. For half an hour they have been burning near the
monastery; also in the valley below and on the mountains to the south.”
There was an instant of deathly silence, as if the hearers awaited a
crash. Marlanx looked steadily at Beverly's face and she saw the
triumphant, accusing gleam in his eyes. Helplessly she stared into the
crowd of faces. Her eyes fell upon Baldos, who suddenly appeared in the
background. His face wore a hunted, imploring look. The next instant he
disappeared among the shadows.
CHAPTER XX. GOSSIP OF SOME
“There is no time to be lost,” exclaimed Count Marlanx. “Ask Colonel
Braze to report to me at the eastern gate with a detail of picked
troopers—a hundred of them. I will meet him there in half an hour.” He
gave other sharp, imperative commands, and in the twinkling of an eye
the peaceful atmosphere was transformed into the turbulent, exciting
rush of activity. The significance of the fires seen in the hills could
not be cheaply held. Instant action was demanded. The city was filled
with the commotion of alarm; the army was brought to its feet with a
jerk that startled even the most ambitious.
The first thing that General Marlanx did was to instruct Quinnox to
set a vigilant watch over Baldos. He was not to be arrested, but it was
understood that the surveillance should be but little short of
incarceration. He was found at the barracks shortly after the report
concerning the signal fires, and told in plain words that General
Marlanx had ordered a guard placed over him for the time being, pending
the result of an investigation. Baldos had confidently expected to be
thrown into a dungeon for his affront. He did not know that Grenfall
Lorry stood firm in his conviction that Baldos was no spy, and was
supported by others in high authority.
Marlanx was bottling his wrath and holding back his revenge for a
distinct purpose. Apart from the existence of a strong, healthy
prejudice in the guard's favor, what the old general believed and what
he could prove were two distinct propositions. He was crafty enough,
however, to take advantage of a condition unknown to Beverly Calhoun,
the innocent cause of all his bitterness toward Baldos.
As he hastened from the council chamber, his eyes swept the crowd of
eager, excited women in the grand hall. From among them he picked
Beverly and advanced upon her without regard for time and consequence.
Despite her animation he was keen enough to see that she was sorely
troubled. She did not shrink from him as he had half expected, but met
him with bold disdain in her eyes.
“This is the work of your champion,” he said in tones that did not
reach ears other than her own. “I prophesied it, you must remember. Are
you satisfied now that you have been deceived in him?”
“I have implicit confidence in him. I suppose you have ordered his
arrest?” she asked with quiet scorn.
“He is under surveillance, at my suggestion. For your sake, and
yours alone, I am giving him a chance. He is your protege; you are
responsible for his conduct. To accuse him would be to place you in an
embarrassing position. There is a sickening rumor in court circles that
you have more than a merely kind and friendly interest in the rascal.
If I believed that, Miss Calhoun, I fear my heart could not be kind to
him. But I know it is not true. You have a loftier love to give. He is
a clever scoundrel, and there is no telling how much harm he has
already done to Graustark. His every move is to be watched and reported
to me. It will be impossible for him to escape. To save him from the
vengeance of the army, I am permitting him to remain in your service,
ostensibly, at least. His hours of duty have been changed, however.
Henceforth he is in the night guard, from midnight till dawn. I am
telling you this, Miss Calhoun, because I want you to know that in
spite of all the indignity I have suffered, you are more to me than any
other being in the world, more to me even than my loyalty to Graustark.
Do me the honor and justice to remember this. I have suffered much for
you. I am a rough, hardened soldier, and you have misconstrued my
devotion. Forgive the harsh words my passion may have inspired.
Farewell! I must off to undo the damage we all lay at the door of the
man you and I are protecting.”
He was too wise to give her the chance to reply. A moment later he
was mounted and off for the eastern gates, there to direct the
movements of Colonel Braze and his scouts. Beverly flew at once to
Yetive with her plea for Baldos. She was confronted by a rather
sober-faced sovereign. The news of the hour was not comforting to the
princess and her ministers.
“You don't believe he is a spy?” cried Beverly, stopping just inside
the door, presuming selfishly that Baldos alone was the cause for
worry. She resolved to tell Yetive of the conflict in the park.
“Dear me, Beverly, I am not thinking of him. We've discussed him
jointly and severally and every other way and he has been settled for
the time being. You are the only one who is thinking of him, my dear
child. We have weightier things to annoy us.”
“Goodness, how you talk! He isn't annoying. Oh, forgive me, Yetive,
for I am the silliest, addle-patedest goose in the kingdom. And you are
so troubled. But do you know that he is being watched? They suspect
him. So did I, at first, I'll admit it. But I don't—now. Have you read
the note I gave to you out there?”
“Yes, dear. It's just as I expected. He has known from the
beginning. He knew when he caught Dagmar and me spying behind that
abominable curtain. But don't worry me any longer about him, please.
Wait here with me until we have reports from the troops. I shall not
sleep until I know what those fires meant. Forget Baldos for an hour or
two, for my sake.”
“You dear old princess, I'm an awful brute, sure 'nough. I'll forget
him forever for your sake. It won't be hard, either. He's just a mere
guard. Pooh! He's no prince.”
Whereupon, reinforced by Mrs. Anguish and the Countess Halfont, she
proceeded to devote herself to the task of soothing and amusing the
distressed princess while the soldiers of Graustark ransacked the
moonlit hills. The night passed, and the next day was far on its way to
sunset before the scouts came in with tidings. No trace of the
mysterious signalers had been found. The embers of the half-dozen fires
were discovered, but their builders were gone. The search took in miles
of territory, but it was unavailing. Not even a straggler was found.
The so-called troupe of actors, around whom suspicion centered, had
been swallowed by the capacious solitude of the hills. Riders from the
frontier posts to the south came in with the report that all was quiet
in the threatened district. Dawsbergen was lying quiescent, but with
the readiness of a skulking dog.
There was absolutely no solution to the mystery connected with the
fires on the mountain sides. Baldos was questioned privately and
earnestly by Lorry and Dangloss. His reply was simple, but it furnished
food for reflection and, at the same time, no little relief to the
“It is my belief, Mr. Lorry, that the fires were built by brigands
and not by your military foes. I have seen these fires in the north,
near Axphain, and they were invariably meant to establish communication
between separated squads of robbers, all belonging to one band. My
friends and I on more than one occasion narrowly escaped disaster by
prying into the affairs of these signalers. I take it that the squads
have been operating in the south and were brought together last night
by means of the fires. Doubtless they have some big project of their
own sort on foot.”
That night the city looked for a repetition of the fires, but the
mountains were black from dusk till dawn. Word reached the castle late
in the evening, from Ganlook, that an Axphainian nobleman and his
followers would reach Edelweiss the next day. The visit was a friendly
but an important one. The nobleman was no other than the young Duke of
Mizrox, intimate friend of the unfortunate Prince Lorenz who met his
death at the hand of Prince Gabriel, and was the leader of the party
which opposed the vengeful plans of Princess Volga. His arrival in
Edelweiss was awaited with deep anxiety, for it was suspected that his
news would be of the most important character.
Beverly Calhoun sat on the balcony with the princess long after
midnight. The sky was black with the clouds of an approaching storm;
the air was heavy with foreboding silence. Twice, from their darkened
corner near the pillar, they saw Baldos as he paced steadily past the
castle on patrol, with Haddan at his side. Dreamily the watchers in the
cool balcony looked down upon the somber park and its occasional
guardsman. Neither was in the mood to talk. As they rose at last to go
to their rooms, something whizzed through the air and dropped with a
slight thud in the center of the balcony. The two young women started
back in alarm. A faint light from Beverly's window filtered across the
“Don't touch it, Beverly,” cried the princess, as the girl started
forward with an eager exclamation. But Beverly had been thinking of the
very object that now quivered before her in the dull light, saucy,
aggressive and jaunty as it was the night when she saw it for the first
A long, slim red feather bobbed to and fro as if saluting her with
soldierly fidelity. Its base was an orange, into which it had been
stuck by the hand that tossed it from below. Beverly grasped it with
more ecstasy than wisdom and then rushed to the stone railing, Yetive
looking on in amazement. Diligently she searched the ground below for
the man who had sent the red message, but he was nowhere in sight. Then
came the sudden realization that she was revealing a most unmaidenly
eagerness, to him as well as to the princess, for she did not doubt
that he was watching from the shadows below. She withdrew from the rail
in confusion and fled to her bed-chamber, followed by her curious
companion. There were explanations—none of which struck speaker or
listener as logical—and there were giggles which completely simplified
the situation. Beverly thrust the slim red feather into her hair, and
struck an attitude that would have set Baldos wild with joy if he could
have seen it. The next day, when she appeared in the park, the feather
stood up defiantly from the band of her sailor hat, though womanly
perverseness impelled her to ignore Baldos when he passed her on his
way to mess.
The Duke of Mizrox came into the city hours after the time set for
his arrival. It was quite dark when the escort sent by Colonel Quinnox
drew up at the castle gates with the visitor. The duke and his party
had been robbed by brigands in the broad daylight and at a point not
more than five miles from Edelweiss! And thus the mystery of the signal
fires was explained. Count Marlanx did not soon forget the triumphant
look he received from Beverly Calhoun when the duke's misfortunes were
announced. Shameless as it may seem, she rejoiced exceedingly over the
acts of the robbers.
Mizrox announced to the princess and her friends that he was not an
emissary from the Axphainian government. Instead, he was but little
less than a fugitive from the wrath of Volga and the crown adherents.
Earlier in the week he had been summoned before Volga and informed that
his absence for a few months, at least, from the principality was
desirable. The privilege was allowed him of selecting the country which
he desired to visit during that period, and he coolly chose Graustark.
He was known to have friendly feelings for that state; but no
objections were raised. This friendship also gave him a welcome in
Edelweiss. Mizrox plainly stated his position to Yetive and the prime
minister. He asked for protection, but declined to reveal any of the
plans then maturing in his home country. This reluctance to become a
traitor, even though he was not in sympathy with his sovereign, was
respected by the princess. He announced his willingness to take up arms
against Dawsbergen, but would in no way antagonize Axphain from an
The duke admitted that the feeling in Axphain's upper circles was
extremely bitter toward Graustark. The old-time war spirit had not died
down. Axphain despised her progressive neighbor.
“I may as well inform your highness that the regent holds another
and a deeper grudge against Graustark,” he said, in the audience
chamber where were assembled many of the nobles of the state, late on
the night of his arrival. “She insists that you are harboring and even
shielding the pretender to our throne, Prince Frederic. It is known
that he is in Graustark and, moreover, it is asserted that he is in
direct touch with your government.”
Yetive and her companions looked at one another with glances of
Comprehension. He spoke in English now for the benefit of Beverly
Calhoun, an interested spectator, who felt her heart leap suddenly and
swiftly into violent insurrection.
“Nothing could be more ridiculous,” said Yetive after a pause. “We
do not know Frederic, and we are not harboring him.”
“I am only saying what is believed to be true by Axphain, your
highness. It is reported that he joined you in the mountains in June
and since has held a position of trust in your army.”
“Would you know Prince Frederic if you were to see him?” quietly
“I have not seen him since he was a very small boy, and then but for
a moment—on the day when he and his mother were driven through the
streets on their way to exile.”
“We have a new man in the Castle Guard and there is a mystery
attached to him. Would you mind looking at him and telling us if he is
what Frederic might be in his manhood?” Lorry put the question and
everyone present drew a deep breath of interest.
Mizrox readily consented and Baldos, intercepted on his rounds, was
led unsuspecting into an outer chamber. The duke, accompanied by Lorry
and Baron Dangloss, entered the room. They were gone from the
assemblage but a few minutes, returning with smiles of uncertainty on
“It is impossible, your highness, for me to say whether or not it is
Frederic,” said the duke frankly. “He is what I imagine the pretender
might be at his age, but it would be sheer folly for me to speculate. I
do not know the man.”
Beverly squeezed the Countess Dagmar's arm convulsively.
“Hurrah!” she whispered, in great relief. Dagmar looked at her in
astonishment. She could not fathom the whimsical American.
“They have been keeping an incessant watch over the home of
Frederic's cousin. He is to marry her when the time is propitious,”
volunteered the young duke. “She is the most beautiful girl in Axphain,
and the family is one of the wealthiest. Her parents bitterly oppose
the match. They were to have been secretly married some months ago, and
there is a rumor to the effect that they did succeed in evading the
vigilance of her people.”
“You mean that they may be married?” asked Yetive, casting a quick
glance at Beverly.
“It is not improbable, your highness. He is known to be a daring
young fellow, and he has never failed in a siege against the heart of
woman. Report has it that he is the most invincible Lothario that ever
donned love's armor.” Beverly was conscious of furtive glances in her
direction, and a faint pink stole into her temples.” Our fugitive
princes are lucky in neither love nor war,” went on the duke.” Poor
Dantan, who is hiding from Gabriel, is betrothed to the daughter of the
present prime minister of Dawsbergen, the beautiful Iolanda, I have
seen her. She is glorious, your highness.”
“I, too, have seen her,” said Yetive, more gravely than she thought.
“The report of their betrothal is true, then?”
“His sudden overthrow prevented the nuptials which were to have
taken place in a month had not Gabriel returned. Her father, the Duke
of Matz, wisely accepted the inevitable and became prime minister to
Gabriel. Iolanda, it is said, remains true to him and sends messages to
him as he wanders through the mountains.”
Beverly's mind instantly reverted to the confessions of Baldos. He
had admitted the sending and receiving of messages through Franz. Try
as she would, she could not drive the thought from her mind that he was
Dantan and now came the distressing fear that his secret messages were
words of love from Iolanda. The audience lasted until late in the
night, but she was so occupied with her own thoughts that she knew of
but little that transpired.
Of one thing she was sure. She could not go to sleep that night.
CHAPTER XXI. THE ROSE
The next morning Aunt Fanny had a hard time of it. Her mistress was
petulant; there was no sunshine in the bright August day as it appeared
to her. Toward dawn, after she had counted many millions of black sheep
jumping backward over a fence, she had fallen asleep. Aunt Fanny obeyed
her usual instructions on this luckless morning. It was Beverly's rule
to be called every morning at seven o'clock. But how was her attendant
to know that the graceful young creature who had kicked the counterpane
to the foot of the bed and had mauled the pillow out of all shape, had
slept for less than thirty minutes? How was she to know that the
flushed face and frown were born in the course of a night of
distressing perplexities? She knew only that the sleeping beauty who
lay before her was the fairest creature in all the universe. For some
minutes Aunt Fanny stood off and admired the rich youthful glory of the
sleeper, prophetically reluctant to disturb her happiness. Then she
obeyed the impulse of duty and spoke the summoning words.
“Wha—what time is it?” demanded the newcomer from the land of Nod,
stretching her fine young body with a splendid but discontented yawn.
“Seben, Miss Bev'ly; wha' time do yo' s'pose hit is? Hit's d'
reg'lah time, o' co'se. Did yo' all have a nice sleep, honey?” and Aunt
Fanny went blissfully about the business of the hour.
“I didn't sleep a wink, confound it,” grumbled Beverly, rubbing her
eyes and turning on her back to glare up at the tapestry above the
“Yo' wasn' winkin' any when Ah fust come into de room, lemme tell
yo',” cackled Aunt Fanny with caustic freedom.
“See here, now, Aunt Fanny, I'm not going to stand any lecture from
you this morning. When a fellow hasn't slept a—”
“Who's a-lecturin' anybody, Ah'd lak to know? Ah'm jes' tellin' yo'
what yo' was a-doin' when Ah came into de room. Yo' was a-sleepin'
p'etty doggone tight, lemme tell yo'. Is yo' goin' out fo' yo' walk
befo' b'eakfus, honey? 'Cause if yo' is, yo' all 'll be obleeged to
climb out'n dat baid maghty quick-like. Yo' baf is ready, Miss Bev'ly.”
Beverly splashed the water with unreasonable ferocity for a few
minutes, trying to enjoy a diversion that had not failed her until this
“Aunt Fanny,” she announced, after looking darkly through her window
into the mountains above, “if you can't brush my hair—ouch!—any
easier than this, I'll have someone else do it, that's all. You're a
regular old bear.”
“Po' lil' honey,” was all the complacent “bear” said in reply,
without altering her methods in the least.
“Well,” said Beverly threateningly, with a shake of her head, “be
careful, that's all. Have you heard the news?”
“Wha' news, Miss Bev'ly?”
“We're going back to Washin'ton.”
“Thank de Lawd! When?”
“I don't know. I've just this instant made up my mind. I think we'll
start—let's see: this is the sixth of August, isn't it? Well, look and
see, if you don't know, stupid. The tenth? My goodness, where has the
time gone, anyway? Well? we'll start sometime between the eleventh and
“Of dis monf, Miss Bev'ly?”
“No; September. I want you to look up a timetable for me to-day. We
must see about the trains.”
“Dey's on'y one leavin' heah daily, an' hit goes at six in de
mo'nin'. One train a day! Ain' 'at scan'lous?”
“I'm sure, Aunt Fanny, it is their business—not ours,” said Beverly
“P'raps dey mought be runnin' a excuhsion 'roun' 'baout Septembeh,
Miss Bev'ly,” speculated Aunt Fanny consolingly. “Dey gen'ly has 'em in
“You old goose,” cried Beverly, in spite of herself.
“Ain' yo' habin' er good time, honey?”
“No, I am not.”
“Fo' de lan's sake, Ah wouldn' s'picioned hit fo' a minnit. Hit's de
gayest place Ah mos' eveh saw—'cept Wash'ton an' Lex'ton an'
“Well, you don't know everything,” said Beverly crossly. “I wish
you'd take that red feather out of my hat—right away.”
“Shall Ah frow hit away, Miss Bev'ly?”
“We—ll, no; you needn't do that,” said Beverly, “Put it on my
dressing-table. I'll attend to it.”
“Wha's become o' de gemman 'at wo' hit in the fust place? Ah ain'
seen him fo' two—three days.”
“I'm sure I don't know. He's probably asleep. That class of people
never lose sleep over anything.”
“'E's er pow'ful good-lookin' pusson,” suggested Aunt Fanny.
Beverly's eyes brightened.
“Oh, do you think so?” she said, quite indifferently. “What are you
doing with that hat?”
“Takin' out de featheh—jes' as—”
“Well, leave it alone. Don't disturb my things, Aunt Fanny. How many
times must I tell you—”
“Good Lawd!” was all that Aunt Fanny could say.
“Don't forget about the time-tables,” said Beverly, as she sallied
forth for her walk in the park.
In the afternoon she went driving with Princess Yetive and the young
Duke of Mizrox, upon whose innocent and sufficiently troubled head she
was heaping secret abuse because of the news he brought. Later, Count
Marlanx appeared at the castle for his first lesson in poker. He looked
so sure of himself that Beverly hated him to the point of desperation.
At the same time she was eager to learn how matters stood with Baldos.
The count's threat still hung over her head, veiled by its ridiculous
shadow of mercy. She knew him well enough by this time to feel
convinced that Baldos would have to account for his temerity, sooner or
later. It was like the cat and the helpless mouse.
“It's too hot,” she protested, when he announced himself ready for
the game. “Nobody plays poker when it's 92 in the shade.”
“But, your highness,” complained the count, “war may break out any
day. I cannot concede delay.”
“I think there's a game called 'shooting craps,'“ suggested she
serenely. “It seems to me it would be particularly good for warriors.
You could be shooting something all the time.”
He went away in a decidedly irascible frame of mind. She did not
know it, but Baldos was soon afterward set to work in the garrison
stables, a most loathsome occupation, in addition to his duties as a
guard by night.
After mature deliberation Beverly set herself to the task of writing
home to her father. It was her supreme intention to convince him that
she would be off for the States in an amazingly short time. The major,
upon receiving the letter three weeks later, found nothing in it to
warrant the belief that she was ever coming home. He did observe,
however, that she had but little use for the army of Graustark, and was
especially disappointed in the set of men Yetive retained as her
private guard. For the life of her, Beverly could not have told why she
disapproved of the guard in general or in particular, but she was
conscious of the fact, after the letter was posted, that she had said
many things that might have been left unwritten. Besides, it was not
Baldos's fault that she could not sleep; it was distinctly her own. He
had nothing to do with it.
“I'll bet father will be glad to hear that I am coming home,” she
said to Yetive, after the letter was gone.
“Oh, Beverly, dear, I hate to hear of your going,” cried the
princess.” When did you tell him you'd start?”
“Why, oh,—er—let me see; when did I say? Dash me—as Mr.
Anguish would say—I don't believe I gave a date. It seems to me I said
soon, that's all.”
“You don't know how relieved I am,” exclaimed Yetive rapturously?
and Beverly was in high dudgeon because of the implied reflection, “I
believe you are in a tiff with Baldos,” went on Yetive airily.
“Goodness! How foolish you can be at times, Yetive,” was what
Beverly gave back to her highness, the Princess of Graustark.
Late in the evening couriers came in from the Dawsbergen frontier
with reports which created considerable excitement in castle and army
circles. Prince Gabriel himself had been seen in the northern part of
his domain, accompanied by a large detachment of picked soldiers. Lorry
set out that very night for the frontier, happy in the belief that
something worth while was about to occur. General Marlanx issued orders
for the Edelweiss army corps to mass beyond the southern gates of the
city the next morning. Commands were also sent to the outlying
garrisons. There was to be a general movement of troops before the end
of the week. Graustark was not to be caught napping.
Long after the departure of Lorry and Anguish, the princess sat on
the balcony with Beverly and the Countess Dagmar. They did not talk
much. The mission of these venturesome young American husbands was full
of danger. Something in the air had told their wives that the first
blows of war were to be struck before they looked again upon the men
“I think we have been betrayed by someone,” said Dagmar, after an
almost interminable silence. Her companion did not reply. “The couriers
say that Gabriel knows where we are weakest at the front and that he
knows our every movement. Yetive, there is a spy here, after all.”
“And that spy has access to the very heart of our deliberations,”
added Beverly pointedly. “I say this in behalf of the man whom you
evidently suspect, countess. He could not know these things.”
“I do not say that he does know, Miss Calhoun, but it is not beyond
reason that he may be the go-between, the means of transferring
information from the main traitor to the messengers who await outside
“Oh, I don't believe it!” cried Beverly hotly.
“I wonder if these things would have happened if Baldos had never
come to Edelweiss?” mused the princess. As though by common impulse,
both of the Graustark women placed their arms about Beverly.
“It's because we have so much at stake, Beverly, dear,” whispered
Dagmar. “Forgive me if I have hurt you.”
Of course, Beverly sobbed a little in the effort to convince them
that she did not care whom they accused, if he proved to be the right
man in the end. They left her alone on the balcony. For an hour after
midnight she sat there and dreamed. Everyone was ready to turn against
Baldos. Even she had been harsh toward him, for had she not seen him
relegated to the most obnoxious of duties after promising him a far
different life? And now what was he thinking of her? His descent from
favor had followed upon the disclosures which made plain to each the
identity of the other. No doubt he was attributing his degradation, in
a sense, to the fact that she no longer relished his services, having
seen a romantic little ideal shattered by his firm assertions. Of
course, she knew that General Marlanx was alone instrumental in
assigning him to the unpleasant duty he now observed, but how was
Baldos to know that she was not the real power behind the Iron Count?
A light drizzle began to fall, cold and disagreeable. There were no
stars, no moon. The ground below was black with shadows, but shimmering
in spots touched by the feeble park lamps. She retreated through her
window, determined to go to bed. Her rebellious brain, however, refused
to banish him from her thoughts. She wondered if he were patroling the
castle grounds In the rain, in all that lonely darkness. Seized by a
sudden inspiration, she threw a gossamer about her, grasped an umbrella
and ventured out upon the balcony once more. Guiltily she searched the
night through the fine drizzling rain; her ears listened eagerly for
the tread which was so well known to her.
At last he strode beneath a lamp not far away. He looked up, but, of
course, could not see her against the dark wall. For a long time he
stood motionless beneath the light. She could not help seeing that he
was dejected, tired, unhappy. His shoulders drooped, and there as a
general air of listlessness about the figure which had once been so
full of courage and of hope. The post light fell directly upon his
face. It was somber, despondent, strained. He wore the air of a
prisoner. Her heart went out to him like a flash. The debonair knight
of the black patch was no more; in his place there stood a sullen slave
“Baldos!” she called softly, her voice penetrating the dripping air
with the clearness of a bell. He must have been longing for the sound
of it, for he started and looked eagerly in her direction. His tall
form straightened as he passed his hand over his brow. It was but a
voice from his dream, he thought. “Aren't you afraid you'll get wet?”
asked the same low, sweet voice, with the suggestion of a laugh behind
it. With long strides he crossed the pavement and stood almost directly
“Your highness!” he exclaimed gently, joyously. “What are you doing
“Wondering, Baldos—wondering what you were thinking of as you stood
under the lamp over there.”
“I was thinking of your highness,” he called up, softly.
“No, no!” she protested.
“I, too, was wondering—wondering what you were dreaming of as you
slept, for you should be asleep at this hour, your highness, instead of
standing out there in the rain.”
“Baldos,” she called down tremulously, “you don't like this work, do
“It has nothing but darkness in it for me. I never see the light of
your eyes. I never feel the—”
“Sh! You must not talk like that. It's not proper, and besides
someone may be listening. The night has a thousand ears—or is it eyes?
But listen: to-morrow you shall be restored to your old duties. You
surely cannot believe that I had anything to do with the order which
compels you to work at this unholy hour.”
“I was afraid you were punishing me for my boldness. My heart has
been sore—you never can know how sore. I was disgraced, dismissed,
“No, no—you were not! You must not say that. Go away now,
Baldos. You will ride with me to-morrow,” she cried nervously. “Please
go to some place where you won't get dripping wet.”
“You forget that I am on guard,” he said with a laugh. “But you are
a wise counsellor. Is the rain so pleasant to you?”
“I have an umbrella,” she protested. “What are you doing?” she cried
in alarm. He was coming hand over hand, up the trellis-work that
enclosed the lower verandah.
“I am coming to a place where I won't get dripping wet,” he called
softly. There was a dangerous ring in his voice and she drew back in a
“You must not!” she cried desperately. “This is madness! Go down,
“I am happy enough to fly, but cannot. So I do the next best
thing—I climb to you.” His arm was across the stone railing by this
time and he was panting from the exertion, not two feet from where she
crouched. “Just one minute of heaven before I go back to the shadow of
earth. I am happy again. Marlanx told me you had dismissed me. I wonder
what he holds in reserve for me. I knew he lied, but it is not until
now that I rejoice. Come, you are to shield me from the rain.”
“Oh, oh!” she gasped, overwhelmed by his daring passion. “I should
die if anyone saw you here.” Yet she spasmodically extended the
umbrella so that it covered him and left her out in the drizzle.
“And so should I,” responded he softly. “Listen to me. For hours and
hours I have been longing for the dear old hills in which you found me.
I wanted to crawl out of Edelweiss and lose myself forever in the rocks
and crags. To-night when you saw me I was trying to say good-bye to you
forever. I was trying to make up my mind to desert. I could not endure
the new order of things. You had cast me off. My friends out there were
eager to have me with them. In the city everyone is ready to call me a
spy—even you, I thought. Life was black and drear. Now, my princess,
it is as bright as heaven itself.”
“You must not talk like this,” she whispered helplessly. “You are
making me sorry I called to you.”
“I should have heard you if you had only whispered, my rain
princess. I have no right to talk of love—I am a vagabond; but I have
a heart, and it is a bold one. Perhaps I dream that I am here beside
you—so near that I can touch your face—but it is the sweetest of
dreams. But for it I should have left Edelweiss weeks ago. I shall
never awaken from this dream; you cannot rob me of the joys of
Under the spell of his passion she drew nearer to him as he clung
strongly to the rail. The roses at her throat came so close that he
could bury his face in them. Her hand touched his cheek, and he kissed
its palm again and again, his wet lips stinging her blood to the tips
of her toes.
“Go away, please,” she implored faintly. “Don't you see that you
must not stay here—now?”
“A rose, my princess,—one rose to kiss all through the long night,”
he whispered. She could feel his eyes burning into her heart. With
trembling, hurried fingers she tore loose a rose. He could not seize it
with his hands because of the position he held, and she laughed
tantalizingly. Then she kissed it first and pressed it against his
mouth. His lips and teeth closed over the stem and the rose was his.
“There are thorns,” she whispered, ever so softly.
“They are the riches of the poor,” he murmured with difficulty, but
“Now, go,” she said, drawing resolutely away. An instant later his
head disappeared below the rail. Peering over the side she saw his
figure spring easily to the ground, and then came the rapid, steady
tramp as he went away on his dreary patrol.
“I couldn't help it,” she was whispering to herself between joy and
Glancing instinctively out toward the solitary lamp she saw two men
standing in its light. One of them was General Marlanx; the other she
knew to be the spy that watched Baldos. Her heart sank like lead when
she saw that the two were peering intently toward the balcony where she
stood, and where Baldos had clung but a moment before.
CHAPTER XXII. A PROPOSAL
She shrank back with a great dread in her heart. Marlanx, of all
men! Why was he in the park at this hour of the night? There could be
but one answer, and the very thought of it almost suffocated her. He
was drawing the net with his own hands, he was spying with his own
eyes. For a full minute it seemed to her that her heart would stop
beating. How long had he been standing there? What had he seen or
heard? Involuntarily she peered over the rail for a glimpse of Baldos.
He had gone out into the darkness, missing the men at the lamp-post
either by choice or through pure good fortune. A throb of thankfulness
assailed her heart. She was not thinking of her position, but of his.
Again she drew stealthily away from the rail, possessed of a
ridiculous feeling that her form was as plain to the vision as if it
were broad daylight. The tread of a man impelled her to glance below
once more before fleeing to her room. Marlanx was coming toward the
verandah. She fled swiftly, pausing at the window to lower the friendly
but forgotten umbrella. From below came the sibilant hiss of a man
seeking to attract her attention. Once more she stopped to listen. The
“hist” was repeated, and then her own name was called softly but
imperatively. It was beyond the power of woman to keep from laughing.
It struck her as irresistibly funny that the Iron Count should be
standing out there in the rain, signaling to her like a love-sick boy.
Once she was inside, however, it did not seem so amusing. Still, it
gave her an immense amount of satisfaction to slam the windows loudly,
as if in pure defiance. Then she closed the blinds, shutting out the
Turning up the light at her dressing-table, she sat down in a state
of sudden collapse. For a long time she stared at her face in the
mirror. She saw the red of shame and embarrassment mount to her cheeks
and then she covered her eyes with her hands.
“Oh, what a fool you've been,” she half sobbed, shrinking from the
mirror as if it were an accuser.
She prepared for bed with frantic haste. Just as she was about to
scramble in and hide her face in the pillows, a shocking thought came
to her. The next she was at the windows and the slats were closed with
a rattle like a volley of firearms. Then she jumped into bed. She
wondered if the windows were locked. Out she sprang again like a flash,
and her little bare feet scurried across the room, first to the windows
and then to the door.
“Now, I reckon I'm safe,” she murmured a moment later, again getting
into bed. “I love to go to sleep with the rain pattering outside like
that. Oh, dear, I'm so sorry he has to walk all night In this rain.
Poor fellow! I wonder where he is now. Goodness, it's raining cats and
But in spite of the rain she could not go to sleep. Vague fears
began to take possession of her. Something dreadful told her that Count
Marlanx was on the balcony and at her window, notwithstanding the rain
pour. The fear became oppressive, maddening. She felt the man's
presence almost as strongly as if he were in plain view. He was there,
she knew it.
The little revolver that had served her so valiantly at the Inn of
the Hawk and Raven lay upon a stool near the bedside every night.
Consumed by the fear that the window might open slowly at any moment,
she reached forth and clutched the weapon. Then she shrank back in the
bed, her eyes fixed upon the black space across the room. For hours she
shivered and waited for the window to open, dozing away time and again
only to come back to wakefulness with a start.
The next morning she confessed to herself that her fears had been
silly. Her first act after breakfasting alone in her room was to seek
out Colonel Quinnox, commander of the castle guard. In her mind she was
greatly troubled over the fate of the bold visitor of the night before.
There was a warm, red glow in her face and a quick beat in her heart as
she crossed the parade-ground. Vagabond though he was, he had conquered
where princes had failed. Her better judgment told her that she could
be nothing to this debonair knight of the road, yet her heart
stubbornly resisted all the arguments that her reason put forth.
Colonel Quinnox was pleasant, but he could give Beverly no promise
of leniency in regard to Baldos. Instructions had come to him from
General Marlanx, and he could not set them aside at will. Her plea that
he might once more be assigned to old-time duties found the colonel
regretfully obdurate. Baldos could not ride with her again until
Marlanx withdrew the order which now obtained, Beverly swallowed her
pride and resentment diplomatically, smiled her sweetest upon the
distressed colonel, and marched defiantly back to the castle. Down in
her rebellious, insulted heart she was concocting all sorts of plans
for revenge. Chief among them was the terrible overthrow of the Iron
Count. Her wide scope of vengeance even contemplated the destruction of
Graustark if her end could be obtained in no other way.
Full of these bitter-sweet thoughts she came to the castle doors
before she saw who was waiting for her upon the great verandah. As she
mounted the steps, a preoccupied frown upon her fair brow, General
Marlanx, lean, crafty and confident, advanced to greet her. The early
hour was responsible for the bright solitude which marked the place.
But few signs of life were in evidence about the castle.
She stopped with a sharp exclamation of surprise. Then scorn and
indignation rushed in to fill the place of astonishment. She faced the
smiling old man with anger in her eyes.
“Good morning,” he said, extending his hand, which she did not see.
She was wondering how much he had seen and heard at midnight.
“I thought the troops were massing this morning,” she said coldly.
“Don't you mass, too?”
“There is time enough for that, my dear. I came to have a talk with
you—in private,” he said meaningly.
“It is sufficiently private here, Count Marlanx. What have you to
say to me?”
“I want to talk about last night. You were very reckless to do what
“Oh, you were playing the spy, then?” she asked scornfully.
“An involuntary observer, believe me—and a jealous one. I had hoped
to win the affections of an innocent girl. What I saw last night
shocked me beyond expression.”
“Well, you shouldn't have looked,” she retorted, tossing her chin;
and the red feather in her hat bobbed angrily.
“I am surprised that one as clever as you are could have carried on
an amour so incautiously,” he said blandly.
“What do you mean?”
“I mean that I saw everything that occurred.”
“Well, I'm not ashamed of it,” obstinately. “Good-bye, Count
“One moment, please. I cannot let you off so easily. What right had
you to take that man into your room, a place sacred in the palace of
Graustark? Answer me, Miss Calhoun.”
Beverly drew back in horror and bewilderment.
“Into my room?” she gasped.
“Let us waste no time in subterfuge. I saw him come from your
window, and I saw all that passed between you in the balcony. Love's
eyes are keen. What occurred in your chamber I can only—”
“Stop! How dare you say such a thing to me?” she fiercely cried.
“You miserable coward! You know he was not in my room. Take it
back—take back every word of that lie!” She was white with passion,
cold with terror.
“Bah! This is childish. I am not the only one who saw him, my
dear. He was in your room—you were in his arms. It's useless to deny
it. And to think that I have spared him from death to have it come to
this! You need not look so horrified. Your secret is safe with me. I
come to make terms with you. My silence in exchange for your beauty.
It's worth it to you. One word from me, you are disgraced and Baldos
dies. Come, my fair lady, give me your promise, it's a good bargain for
Beverly was trembling like a leaf. This phase of his villainy had
not occurred to her. She was like a bird trying to avoid the charmed
eye of the serpent.
“Oh, you—you miserable wretch!” she cried, hoarse with anger and
despair. “What a cur you are! You know you are not speaking the truth.
How can you say such things to me? I have never wronged you—” She was
almost in tears, impotent with shame and fear.
“It has been a pretty game of love for you and the excellent Baldos.
You have deceived those who love you best and trust you most. What will
the princess say when she hears of last night's merry escapade? What
will she say when she learns who was hostess to a common guardsman at
the midnight hour? It is no wonder that you look terrified. It is for
you to say whether she is to know or not. You can bind me to silence.
You have lost Baldos. Take me and all that I can give you in his stead,
and the world never shall know the truth. You love him, I know, and
there is but one way to save him. Say the word and he goes free to the
hills; decline and his life is not worth a breath of air.”
“And pretending to believe this of me, you still ask me to be your
wife. What kind of a man are you?” she demanded, scarcely able to
“My wife?” he said harshly. “Oh, no. You are not the wife of
Baldos,” he added significantly.
“Good God!” gasped Beverly, crushed by the brutality of it all. “I
would sooner die. Would to heaven my father were here, he would shoot
you as he would a dog! Oh, how I loathe you! Don't you try to stop me!
I shall go to the princess myself. She shall know what manner of beast
She was racing up the steps, flaming with anger and shame.
“Remember, I can prove what I have said. Beware what you do. I love
you so much that I now ask you to become my wife. Think well over it.
Your honor and his life! It rests with you,” he cried eagerly,
following her to the door.
“You disgusting old fool,” she hissed, turning upon him as she
pulled the big brass knocker on the door.
“I must have my answer to-night, or you know what will happen,” he
snarled, but he felt in his heart that he had lost through his
She flew to Yetive's boudoir, consumed by rage and mortification.
Between sobs and feminine maledictions she poured the whole story, in
all its ugliness, into the ears of the princess.
“Now, Yetive, you have to stand by me in this,” announced the
narrator conclusively, her eyes beaming hopefully through her tears.
“I cannot prevent General Marlanx from preferring serious charges
against Baldos, dear. I know he was not in your room last night. You
did not have to tell me that, because I saw you both at the balcony
rail.” Beverly's face took on such a radiant look of rejoicing that
Yetive was amply paid for the surprising and gratifying acknowledgment
of a second period of eavesdropping. “You may depend upon me to protect
you from Marlanx. He can make it very unpleasant for Baldos, but he
shall pay dearly for this insult to you. He has gone too far.”
“I don't think he has any proof against Baldos,” said Beverly,
thinking only of the guardsman.
“But it is so easy to manufacture evidence, my dear. The Iron Count
has set his heart upon having you, and he is not the man to be turned
“He seems to think he can get wives as easily as he gets rid of
them, I observe. I was going back to Washington soon, Yetive, but I'll
stay on now and see this thing to the end. He can't scare a Calhoun, no
sir-ee. I'll telegraph for my brother Dan to come over here and punch
his head to pieces.”
“Now, now,—don't be so high and mighty, dear. Let us see how
rational we can be,” said the Princess gently. Whereupon the hot-headed
girl from Dixie suspended hostilities and became a very demure young
woman. Before long she was confessing timidly, then boldly, that she
loved Baldos better than anything in all the world.
“I can't help it, Yetive. I know I oughtn't to, but what is there to
do when one can't help it? There would be an awful row at home if I
married him. Of course, he hasn't asked me. Maybe he won't. In fact,
I'm sure he won't. I shan't give him a chance. But if he does ask me
I'll just keep putting him off. I've done it before, you know. You see,
for a long, long time, I fancied he might be a prince, but he isn't at
all. I've had his word for it. He's just an ordinary
person—like—like—well, like I am. Only he doesn't look so ordinary.
Isn't he handsome, Yetive? And, dear me, he is so impulsive! If he had
asked me to jump over the balcony rail with him last night, I believe I
would have done it. Wouldn't that have surprised old Marlanx?” Beverly
gave a merry laugh. The troubles of the morning seemed to fade away
under the warmth of her humor. Yetive sat back and marvelled at the
manner in which this blithe young American cast out the “blue devils.”
“You must not do anything foolish, Beverly,” she cautioned, “Your
parents would never forgive me if I allowed you to marry or even to
fall in love with any Tom, Dick or Harry over here. Baldos may be the
gallant, honest gentleman we believe him to be, but he also may be the
worst of adventurers. One can never tell, dear. I wish now that I had
not humored you in your plan to bring him to the castle. I'm afraid I
have done wrong. You have seen too much of him and—oh, well, you
will be sensible, won't you, dear?” There was real concern in the
face of the princess. Beverly kissed her rapturously.
“Don't worry about me, Yetive. I know how to take care of myself.
Worry about your old Gabriel, if you like, but don't bother your head
about me,” she cried airily. “Now let's talk about the war. Marlanx
won't do anything until he hears from me. What's the use worrying?”
Nightfall brought General Marlanx in from the camps outside the
gates. He came direct to the castle and boldly sent word to Beverly
that he must speak to her at once. She promptly answered that she did
not want to see him and would not. Without a moment's hesitation he
appealed for an audience with the princess, and it was granted.
He proceeded, with irate coolness, to ask how far she believed
herself bound to protect the person of Baldos, the guard. He understood
that she was under certain obligations to Miss Calhoun and he wanted to
be perfectly sure of his position before taking a step which now seemed
imperative. Baldos was a spy in the employ of Dawsbergen. He had
sufficient proof to warrant his arrest and execution; there were
documents, and there was positive knowledge that he had conferred with
strangers from time to time, even within the walls of the castle
grounds. Marlanx cited instances in which Baldos had been seen talking
to a strange old man inside the grounds, and professed to have proof
that he had gone so far as to steal away by night to meet men beyond
the city walls. He was now ready to seize the guard, but would not do
so until he had conferred with his sovereign.
“Miss Calhoun tells me that you have made certain proposals to her,
Count Marlanx,” said Yetive coldly, her eyes upon his hawkish face.
“I have asked her to be my wife, your highness.”
“You have threatened her, Count Marlanx.”
“She has exposed herself to you? I would not have told what I saw
“Would it interest you to know that I saw everything that passed on
the balcony last night? You will allow me to say, general, that you
have behaved in a most outrageous manner in approaching my guest with
such foul proposals. Stop, sir! She has told me everything and I
believe her. I believe my own eyes. There is no need to discuss the
matter further. You have lost the right to be called a man. For the
present I have only to say that you shall be relieved of the command of
my army. The man who makes war on women is not fit to serve one. As for
Baldos, you are at liberty to prefer the charges. He shall have a fair
trial, rest assured.”
“Your highness, hear me,” implored Marlanx, white to the roots of
“I will hear what you have to say when my husband is at my side.”
“I can but stand condemned, then, your highness, without a hearing.
My vindication will come, however. With your permission, I retire to
contrive the arrest of this spy. You may depose me, but you cannot ask
me to neglect my duty to Graustark. I have tried to save him for Miss
Calhoun's sake—” But her hand was pointing to the door.
Ten minutes later Beverly was hearing everything from the lips of
the princess, and Marlanx was cursing his way toward the barracks,
vengeance in his heart. But a swift messenger from the castle reached
the guard-room ahead of him. Colonel Quinnox was reading an official
note from the princess when Marlanx strode angrily into the room.
“Bring this fellow Baldos to me, Colonel Quinnox,” he said, without
“I regret to say that I have but this instant received a message
from her highness, commanding me to send him to the castle,” said
Quinnox, with a smile.
“The devil! What foolishness is this?” snarled the Iron Count.
“Have a care, sir,” said Quinnox stiffly. “It is of the princess you
“Bah! I am here to order the man's arrest. It is more important
“Nevertheless, sir, he goes to the castle first. This note says that
I am to disregard any command you may give until further notice.”
Marlanx fell back amazed and stunned. At this juncture Baldos
entered the room. Quinnox handed him an envelope, telling him that it
was from the princess and that he was to repair at once to the castle,
Baldos glanced at the handwriting, and his face lit up proudly.
“I am ready to go, sir,” he said, passing the Iron Count with a most
disconcerting smile on his face.
CHAPTER XXIII. A SHOT IN THE
Baldos started off at once for the castle, his heart singing. In the
darkness of the night he kissed the message which had come to him from
“her highness.” The envelope had been closed with the official seal of
Yetive, Princess of Graustark, and was sacred to the eyes of anyone
save the man to whom it was directed. The words it contained were
burned deep in his brain:
“You are ordered to report for duty in the castle. Come at once.
highness has sent an official command to Colonel Quinnox. Count
Marlanx has been here. You are not expected to desert until you
seen me. There is an underground passage somewhere.—B.”
Baldos went alone and swiftly. The note to Colonel Quinnox had been
imperative. He was to serve as an inner guard until further orders.
Someone, it was reported, had tried to enter Miss Calhoun's room from
the outside during the rainstorm of the previous night, and a special
guard was to be stationed near the door. All of this was unknown to
Baldos, but he did not ask for any explanations.
He was half way to the castle when the sharp report of a gun
startled him. A bullet whizzed close to his ear! Baldos broke into a
crouching run, but did not change his course. He knew that the shot was
intended for him, and that its mission was to prevent him from reaching
the castle. The attendants at the castle door admitted him, panting and
excited, and he was taken immediately to the enchanted boudoir of the
princess which but few men were fortunate enough to enter. There were
three women in the room.
“I am here to report, your highness,” said he, bowing low before the
real princess, with a smile upon his flushed face.
“You are prompt,” said the princess “What have you to report, sir?”
“That an attempt has just been made to kill a member of the castle
guard,” he coolly answered.
“I am quite certain of it, your highness. The bullet almost clipped
“Good heavens!” gasped the listeners. Then they eagerly plied him
with more agitated questions than he could answer.
“And did you not pursue the wretch?” cried the princess.
“No, your highness. I was commanded to report to you at once. Only
the success of the assassin could have made me—well, hesitate,” said
he calmly. “A soldier has but to obey.”
“Do you think there was a deliberate attempt to kill you?” asked the
Countess Dagmar. Beverly Calhoun was dumb with consternation.
“I cannot say, madame. Possibly it was an accidental discharge. One
should not make accusations unsupported. If you have no immediate need
of my services, your highness, I will ask you to grant me leave of
absence for half an hour. I have a peculiar longing to investigate.”
There was a determined gleam in his eyes.
“No? no!” cried Beverly. “Don't you dare to go out there again. You
are to stay right here in the castle, sir. We have something else for
you to do. It was that awful old Marlanx who shot at you. He—”
“I left General Marlanx in Colonel Quinnox's quarters, Miss
Calhoun,” interposed Baldos grimly. “He could not have fired the shot.
For two or three nights, your highness, I have been followed and dogged
with humiliating persistence by two men wearing the uniforms of castle
guards. They do not sleep at the barracks. May I ask what I have done
to be submitted to such treatment?” There was a trace of poorly
concealed indignation in his voice.
“I assure you that this is news to me,” said Yetive in amazement.
“I am being watched as if I were a common thief,” he went on boldly.
“These men are not your agents; they are not the agents of Graustark.
May I be permitted to say that they are spies set upon me by a man who
has an object in disgracing me? Who that man is, I leave to your royal
“Yes, your highness. He bears me a deadly grudge and yet he fears
me. I know full well that he and his agents have built a strong case
against me. They are almost ready to close in upon me, and they will
have false evidence so craftily prepared that even my truest friends
may doubt my loyalty to you and to the cause I serve. Before God, I
have been true to my oath. I am loyal to Graustark. It was a sorry day
when I left the valley and—”
“Oh!” cried Beverly piteously. “Don't say that.”
“Alas, Miss Calhoun, it is true,” said he sadly, “I am penned up
here where I cannot fight back. Treason is laid against me. But, beyond
all this, I have permitted my loyalty to mislead my ambition. I have
aspired to something I can cherish but never possess. Better that I
never should have tasted of the unattainable than to have the cup
withdrawn just as its sweetness begins to intoxicate.”
He stood before them, pale with suppressed emotion. The women of
Graustark looked involuntarily at Beverly, who sat cold and voiceless,
staring at the face of the guard. She knew what he meant; she knew that
something was expected of her. A word from her and he would understand
that he had not tasted of the unattainable. In one brief moment she saw
that she had deliberately led him on, that she had encouraged him, that
she actually had proffered him the cup from which he had begun to sip
the bitterness. Pride and love were waging a conflict in this hapless
southern girl's heart. But she was silent. She could not say the word.
“I think I know what you mean, Baldos,” said Yetive, seeing that
Beverly would not intervene. “We are sorry. No one trusts to your honor
more than I do. My husband believes in you. I will confess that you are
to be arrested as a spy to-morrow. To-night you are to serve as a guard
in the castle. This should prove to you that I have unbounded faith in
you. Moreover, I believe in you to the extent that I should not be
afraid to trust you if you were to go out into the world with every
secret which we possess. You came here under a peculiar stress of
circumstances, not wholly of your own volition. Believe me, I am your
“I shall revere your highness forever for those words,” said he
simply. His eyes went hungrily to Beverly's averted face, and then
assumed a careless gleam which indicated that he had resigned himself
to the inevitable.
“I am constrained to ask you one question, sir,” went on the
princess. “You are not the common goat-hunter you assume. Will you tell
me in confidence who you really are?” The others held their breath. He
hesitated for a moment.
“Will it suffice if I say that I am an unfortunate friend and
advocate of Prince Dantan? I have risked everything for his sake and I
fear I have lost everything. I have failed to be of service to him, but
through no fault of mine. Fate has been against me.”
“You are Christobal,” cried Dagmar eagerly. He gave her a startled
glance, but offered no denial. Beverly's face was a study. If he were
Christobal, then what of the game-warden's daughter?
“We shall question you no further,” said Yetive. “You enlisted to
serve Miss Calhoun. It is for her to command you while you are here.
May God be with you to the end. Miss Calhoun, will you tell him what
his duties are for to-night? Come, my dear.”
Yetive and Dagmar walked slowly from the room, leaving Beverly and
her guard alone.
“I am at your service, Miss Calhoun,” he said easily. His apparent
indifference stung her into womanly revolt.
“I was a fool last night,” she said abruptly.
“No; I was the fool. I have been the fool from the beginning. You
shall not blame yourself, for I do not blame you. It has been a sweet
comedy, a summer pastime. Forget what I may have said to you last
night, forget what my eyes may have said for weeks and weeks.”
“I shall never forget,” said she. “You deserve the best in the
world. Would that I could give it to you. You have braved many dangers
for my sake. I shall not forget. Do you know that we were watched last
“Watched?” he cried incredulously. “Oh, fool that I am! I might have
known. And I have subjected you to—to—don't tell me that harsh things
have been said to you, Miss Calhoun!” He was deeply disturbed.
“General Marlanx saw you. He has threatened me, Baldos,—”
“I will kill him! What do I care for the consequences? He shall pay
“Stop! Where are you going? You are to remain here, sir, and take
your commands from me. I don't want you to kill him. They'd hang you or
something just as bad. He's going to be punished, never fear!” Baldos
smiled in spite of his dismay. It was impossible to face this confident
young champion in petticoats without catching her enthusiasm. “What
have you done with—with that rose?” she asked suddenly, flushing and
diffident. Her eyes glistened with embarrassment.
“It lies next my heart. I love it,” he said bravely.
“I think I'll command you to return it to me,” vaguely.
“A command to be disobeyed. It is in exchange for my feather,” he
“Well, of course, if you are going to be mean about—Now, let me
see,” she said confusedly; “what are your duties for to-night? You are
to stand guard in the corridor. Once in awhile you will go out upon the
balcony and take a look. You see, I am afraid of someone. Oh, Baldos,
what's the use of my trifling like this? You are to escape from
Edelweiss to-night. That is the whole plan—the whole idea in a
nutshell. Don't look like that. Don't you want to go?” Now she was
trembling with excitement.
“I do not want to leave you,” he cried eagerly. “It would be
cowardly. Marlanx would understand that you gave aid and sanction. You
would be left to face the charges he would make. Don't you see,
Beverly? You would be implicated—you would be accused. Why did you not
let me kill him? No; I will not go!” Neither noticed the name by which
he had called her.
“But I insist,” she cried weakly. “You must go away from me. I—I
command you to—”
“Is it because you want to drive me out of your life forever?” he
demanded, sudden understanding coming to him.
“Don't put it that way,” she murmured.
“Is it because you care for me that you want me to go?” he insisted,
drawing near. “Is it because you fear the love I bear for you?”
“Love? You don't really—Stop! Remember where you are, sir! You must
not go on with it, Baldos. Don't come a step nearer. Do go to-night! It
is for the best. I have been awfully wicked in letting it run on as it
has. Forgive me, please forgive me,” she pleaded. He drew back, pale
and hurt. A great dignity settled upon his face. His dark eyes crushed
her with their quiet scorn.
“I understand, Miss Calhoun. The play is over. You will find the
luckless vagabond a gentleman, after all. You ask me to desert the
cause I serve. That is enough. I shall go to-night.”
The girl was near to surrender. Had it not been for the persistent
fear that her proud old father might suffer from her wilfulness, she
would have thrown down the barrier and risked everything in the choice.
Her heart was crying out hungrily for the love of this tall, mysterious
soldier of fortune.
“It is best,” she murmured finally. Later on she was to know the
meaning of the peculiar smile he gave her.
“I go because you dismiss me, not because I fear an enemy. If you
choose to remember me at all, be just enough to believe that I am not a
“You are brave and true and good, and I am a miserable, deceitful
wretch,” she lamented. “You will seek Ravone and the others?”
“Yes. They are my friends. They love my poverty. And now, may it
please your highness, when am I to go forth and in what garb? I should
no longer wear the honest uniform of a Graustark guard.”
“Leave it to me. Everything shall be arranged. You will be discreet?
No one is to know that I am your—”
“Rest assured, Miss Calhoun. I have a close mouth,” and he smiled
“I agree with you,” said she regretfully. “You know how to hold your
tongue.” He laughed harshly. “For once in a way, will you answer a
“I will not promise.”
“You say that you are Dantan's friend. Is it true that he is to
marry the daughter of the Duke of Matz, Countess Iolanda?”
“It has been so reported.”
“Is she beautiful?”
“But is he to marry her?” she insisted, she knew not why.
“How should I know, your highness?”
“If you call me 'your highness' again I'll despise you,” she flared
miserably. “Another question. Is it true that the young Duke Christobal
fled because his father objected to his marriage with a game-warden's
“I have never heard so,” with a touch of hauteur.
“Does he know that the girl is dead?” she asked cruelly. Baldos did
not answer for a long time. He stared at her steadily, his eyes
expressing no emotion from which she could judge him.
“I think he is ignorant of that calamity, Miss Calhoun,” he said.
“With your permission, I shall withdraw. There is nothing to be gained
by delay.” It was such a palpable affront that she shrank within
herself and could have cried.
Without answering, she walked unsteadily to the window and looked
out into the night. A mist came into her eyes. For many minutes she
remained there, striving to regain control of her emotions. All this
time she knew that he was standing just where she had left him, like a
statue, awaiting her command. At last she faced him resolutely.
“You will receive instructions as to your duties here from the guard
at the stairs. When you hear the hall clock strike the hour of two in
the morning go into the chapel, but do not let anyone see you or
suspect. You know where it is. The door will be unlocked.”
“Am I not to see you again?” he asked, and she did not think him
“Yes,” she answered, after a pause that seemed like an eternity, and
he went quietly, silently away.
CHAPTER XXIV. BENEATH THE GROUND
While Baldos was standing guard in the long, lofty hallway the Iron
Count was busy with the machinations which were calculated to result in
a startling upheaval with the break of a new day. He prepared and swore
to the charges preferred against Baldos. They were despatched to the
princess for her perusal in the morning. Then he set about preparing
the vilest accusations against Beverly Calhoun. In his own handwriting
and over his own signature he charged her with complicity in the
betrayal of Graustark, influenced by the desires of the lover who
masqueraded as her protege. At some length he dwelt upon the well-laid
plot of the spy and his accomplice. He told of their secret meetings,
their outrages against the dignity of the court, and their unmistakable
animosity toward Graustark. For each and every count in his vicious
indictment against the girl he professed to have absolute proof by
means of more than one reputable witness.
It was not the design of Marlanx to present this document to the
princess and her cabinet. He knew full well that it would meet the fate
it deserved. It was intended for the eyes of Beverly Calhoun alone. By
means of the vile accusations, false though they were, he hoped to
terrorize her into submission. He longed to possess this lithe,
beautiful creature from over the sea. In all his life he had not
hungered for anything as he now craved Beverly Calhoun. He saw that his
position in the army was rendered insecure by the events of the last
day. A bold, vicious stroke was his only means for securing the prize
he longed for more than he longed for honor and fame.
Restless and enraged, consumed by jealousy and fear, he hung about
the castle grounds long after he had drawn the diabolical charges. He
knew that Baldos was inside the castle, favored, while he, a noble of
the realm, was relegated to ignominy and the promise of degradation.
Encamped outside the city walls the army lay without a leader. Each
hour saw the numbers augmented by the arrival of reserves from the
districts of the principality. His place was out there with the staff.
Yet he could not drag himself away from the charmed circle in which his
prey was sleeping. Morose and grim, he anxiously paced to and fro in an
obscure corner of the grounds.
“What keeps the scoundrel?” he said to himself angrily.
Presently, a villainous looking man dressed in the uniform of the
guards, stealthily approached. “I missed him, general, but I will get
him the next time.” growled the man.
“Curse you for a fool!” hissed Marlanx through his teeth. As another
hireling came up. “What have you got to say?”
The man reported that Baldos had been seen on the balcony alone,
evidently on watch.
Marlanx ground his teeth and his blood stormed his reason. “The job
must be done to-night. You have your instructions. Capture him if
possible; but if necessary, kill him. You know your fate, if you fail.”
Marlanx actually grinned at the thought of the punishment he would mete
out to them. “Now be off!”
Rashly he made his way to the castle front. A bright moon cast its
mellow glow over the mass of stone outlined against the western sky.
For an hour he glowered in the shade of the trees, giving but slight
heed to the guards who passed from time to time. His eyes never left
the enchanted balcony.
At last he saw the man. Baldos came from the floor at the end of the
balcony, paced the full length in the moonlight, paused for a moment
near Beverly Calhoun's window and then disappeared through the same
door that had afforded him egress.
Inside the dark castle the clock at the end of the hall melodiously
boomed the hour of two. Dead quiet followed the soft echoes of the
gong. A tall figure stealthily opened the door to Yetive's chapel and
stepped inside. There was a streak of moonlight through the clear
window at the far end of the room. Baldos, his heart beating rapidly,
stood still for a moment, awaiting the next move in the game. The
ghost-like figure of a woman suddenly stood before him in the path of
the moonbeam, a hooded figure in dark robes. He started as if
confronted by the supernatural.
“Come,” came in an agitated whisper, and he stepped to the side of
the phantom. She turned and the moonlight fell upon the face of Beverly
Calhoun, “Don't speak. Follow me as quickly as you can.”
He grasped her arm, bringing her to a standstill.
“I have changed my mind,” he whispered in her ear. “Do you think I
will run away and leave you to shoulder the blame for all this? On the
balcony near your window an hour ago I—”
“It doesn't make any difference,” she argued. “You have to go. I
want you to go. If you knew just how I feel toward you you would go
without a murmur.”
“You mean that you hate me,” he groaned.
“I wouldn't be so unkind as to say that,” she fluttered. “I don't
know who you are. Come; we can't delay a minute. I have a key to the
gate at the other end of the passage and I know where the secret panel
is located. Hush! It doesn't matter where I got the key. See! See how
easy it is?”
He felt her tense little fingers in the darkness searching for his.
Their hands were icy cold when the clasp came. Together they stood in a
niche of the wall near the chancel rail. It was dark and a cold draft
of air blew across their faces. He could not see, but there was proof
enough that she had opened the secret panel in the wall, and that the
damp, chill air came from the underground passage, which led to a point
outside the city walls.
“You go first,” she whispered nervously. “I'm afraid. There is a
lantern on the steps and I have some matches. We'll light it as soon
as—Oh, what was that?”
“Don't be frightened,” he said. “I think it was a rat.”
“Good gracious!” she gasped. “I wouldn't go in there for the world.”
“Do you mean to say that you intended to do so?” he asked eagerly.
“Certainly. Someone has to return the key to the outer gate. Oh, I
suppose I'll have to go in. You'll keep them off, won't you?”
plaintively. He was smiling in the darkness, thinking what a dear,
whimsical thing she was.
“With my life,” he said softly.
“They're ten times worse than lions,” she announced.
“You must not forget that you return alone,” he said triumphantly.
“But I'll have the lantern going full blast,” she said, and then
allowed him to lead her into the narrow passageway. She closed the
panel and then felt about with her foot until it located the lantern.
In a minute they had a light. “Now, don't be afraid,” she said
encouragingly. He laughed in pure delight; she misunderstood his mirth
and was conscious of a new and an almost unendurable pang. He was
filled with exhilaration over the prospect of escape! Somehow she felt
an impulse to throw her arms about him and drag him back into the
chapel, in spite of the ghost of the game-warden's daughter.
“What is to prevent me from taking you with me?” he said intensely,
a mighty longing in his breast. She laughed but drew back uneasily.
“And live unhappily ever afterward?” said she. “Oh, dear me! Isn't
this a funny proceeding? Just think of me, Beverly Calhoun, being mixed
up in schemes and plots and intrigues and all that. It seems like a
great big dream. And that reminds me: you will find a raincoat at the
foot of the steps. I couldn't get other clothes for you, so you'll have
to wear the uniform. There's a stiff hat of Mr. Lorry's also. You've no
idea how difficult it is for a girl to collect clothes for a man. There
doesn't seem to be any real excuse for it, you know. Goodness, it looks
black ahead there, doesn't it? I hate underground things. They're so
damp and all that. How far is it, do you suppose, to the door in the
wall?” She was chattering on, simply to keep up her courage and to make
her fairest show of composure.
“It's a little more than three hundred yards,” he replied. They were
advancing through the low, narrow stone-lined passage. She steadfastly
ignored the hand he held back for support. It was not a pleasant place,
this underground way to the outside world. The walls were damp and
mouldy; the odor of the rank earth assailed the nostrils; the air was
chill and deathlike.
“How do you know?” she demanded quickly.
“I have traversed the passage before. Miss Calhoun,” he replied. She
stopped like one paralyzed, her eyes wide and incredulous. “Franz was
my guide from the outer gate into the chapel. It is easy enough to get
outside the walls, but extremely difficult to return,” he went on
“You mean to say that you have been in and out by way of this
passage? Then, what was your object, sir?” she demanded sternly.
“My desire to communicate with friends who could not enter the city.
Will it interest you if I say that the particular object of my concern
was a young woman?”
She gasped and was stubbornly silent for a long time. Bitter
resentment filled her soul, bitter disappointment in this young man. “A
young woman!” he had said, oh, so insolently. There could be but one
inference, one conclusion. The realization of it settled one point in
her mind forever.
“It wouldn't interest me in the least. I don't even care who she
was. Permit me to wish you much joy with her. Why don't you go on?”
irritably, forgetting that it was she who delayed progress. His smile
was invisible in the blackness above the lantern. There were no words
spoken until after they had reached the little door in the wall.
Here the passage was wider. There were casks and chests on the
floor, evidently containing articles that required instant removal from
Edelweiss in case of an emergency.
“Who was that woman?” she asked at last. The key to the door was in
the nervous little hand.
“One very near and dear to me. Miss Calhoun. That's all I can say at
“Well, this is the only time you will have the chance,” she cried
loftily. “Here we part. Hush!” she whispered, involuntarily grasping
his arm. “I think I heard a step. Can anyone be following us?” They
stopped and listened. It was as still as a tomb.
“It must be the same old rat,” he answered jokingly. She was too
nervous for any pleasantries, and releasing her hold on his arm, said
timidly, a “Good-bye!”
“Am I to go in this manner? Have you no kind word for me? I love you
better than my soul. It is of small consequence to you, I know, but I
crave one forgiving word. It may be the last.” He clasped her hand and
she did not withdraw it. Her lips were trembling, but her eyes were
brave and obstinate. Suddenly she sat down upon one of the chests. If
he had not told her of the other woman!
“Forgive me instead, for all that I have brought you to,” she
murmured. “It was all my fault. I shall never forget you or forgive
myself. I—I am going back to Washin'ton immediately. I can't bear to
stay here now. Good-bye, and God bless you. Do—do you think we shall
ever see each other again?” Unconsciously she was clinging to his hand.
There were tears in the gray eyes that looked pathetically up into his.
She was very dear and enchanting, down there in the grewsome passageway
with the fitful rays of the lantern lighting her face. Only the
strictest self-control kept him from seizing her in his arms, for
something told him that she would have surrendered.
“This is the end, I fear,” he said, with grim persistence. She
caught her breath in half a sob. Then she arose resolutely, although
her knees trembled shamelessly.
“Well, then, good-bye,” she said very steadily. “You are free to go
where and to whom you like. Think of me once in awhile, Baldos. Here's
the key. Hurry! I—I can't stand it much longer!” She was ready to
break down and he saw it, but he made no sign.
Turning the key in the rusty lock, he cautiously opened the door.
The moonlit world lay beyond. A warm, intoxicating breath of fresh air
came in upon them. He suddenly stooped and kissed her hand.
“Forgive me for having annoyed you with my poor love,” he said, as
he stood in the door, looking into the night beyond.
“All—all right,” she choked out as she started to close the door
“Halt! You are our prisoner!”
The words rang out sharply in the silence of the night.
Instinctively, Beverly made an attempt to close the door; but she was
too late. Two burly, villainous looking men, sword in hand, blocked the
exit and advanced upon them.
“Back! Back!” Baldos shouted to Beverly, drawing his sword.
Like a flash, she picked up the lantern and sprang out of his way.
Capture or worse seemed certain; but her heart did not fail her.
“Put up your sword! You are under arrest!” came from the foremost of
the two. He had heard enough of Baldos's skill with the sword to hope
that the ruse might be successful and that he would surrender peaceably
to numbers. The men's instructions were to take their quarry alive if
possible. The reward for the man, living, exceeded that for him dead.
Baldos instantly recognized them as spies employed by Marlanx. They
had been dogging his footsteps for days and even had tried to murder
him, The desire for vengeance was working like madness in his blood. He
was overjoyed at having them at the point of his sword. Beverly's
presence vouchsafed that he would show little mercy.
“Arrest me, you cowardly curs!” he exclaimed. “Never!” With a spring
to one side, he quickly overturned one of the casks and pushing it in
front of him, it served as a rolling bulwark, preventing a joint
“You first!” he cried coolly, as his sword met that of the leader.
The unhappy wretch was no match for the finest swordsman in Graustark.
He made a few desperate attempts to ward off his inevitable fate,
calling loudly for his comrade to aid him. The latter was eager enough,
but Baldos's strategic roll of the cask effectively prevented him from
taking a hand. With a vicious thrust, the blade of the goat-hunter tore
clean through the man's chest and touched the wall behind.
“One!” cried Baldos, gloating in the chance that had come to him.
The man gasped and fell. He was none too quick in withdrawing his
dripping weapon, for the second man was over the obstacle and upon him.
CHAPTER XXV. THE VALOR OF THE SOUTH
“Hold the lantern higher, Bev—” In the fury of the fight, he
remembered the risk and importance of not mentioning her name, and
stopped short. He was fighting fast but warily, for he realized that
his present adversary was no mean one. As the swords played back and
forth in fierce thrusts and parries, he spoke assuringly to Beverly:
“Don't be frightened! As soon as I finish with this fellow, we will go
on! Ah! Bravo! Well parried, my man! How the deuce could such a
swordsman as you become a cutthroat of Marlanx?”
Beverly had been standing still all this time holding the light high
above her head, according to her lover's orders, for she knew now that
such he was and that she loved him with all her heart. She was a weird
picture standing there as she watched Baldos fighting for their lives,
her beautiful face deathlike in its pallor. Not a cry escaped her lips,
as the sword-blades swished and clashed; she could hear the deep
breathing of the combatants in that tomb-like passage.
Suddenly she started and listened keenly. From behind her, back
there in the darkness, hurried footsteps were unmistakably approaching.
What she had heard, then, was not the scurrying of a rat. Some one was
following them. A terrible anguish seized her. Louder and nearer came
the heavy steps. “Oh, my God! Baldos!” she screamed in terror, “Another
“Have no fear, dear one!” he sung out gaily. His voice was
infinitely more cheerful than he felt, for he realized only too well
the desperate situation; he was penned in and forced to meet an attack
from front and rear. He fell upon his assailant with redoubled fury,
aiming to finish him before the newcomer could give aid.
From out of the gloom came a fiendish laugh. Instantly, the dark
figure of a man appeared, his face completely hidden by a broad slouch
hat and the long cloak which enveloped him. A sardonic voice hissed,
“Trapped at last! My lady and her lover thought to escape, did they!”
The voice was unfamiliar, but the atmosphere seemed charged with
Marlanx. “Kill him, Zem!” he shouted. “Don't let him escape you! I will
take care of the little witch, never fear!” He clutched at the girl and
tried to draw her to him.
“Marlanx! By all the gods!” cried Baldos in despair. He had wounded
his man several times, though not seriously. He dared not turn to
The scene was thrilling, grewsome. Within this narrow, dimly-lighted
underground passage, with its musty walls sweating with dampness and
thick with the tangled meshes of the spider's web, a brave girt and her
lover struggled and fought back to back.
To her dismay, Beverly saw the point of a sword at her throat.
“Out of the way, girl,” the man in the cloak snarled, furious at her
resistance. “You die as well as your lover unless you surrender. He
cannot escape me.”
“And if I refuse,” cried the girl, trying desperately to gain time.
“I will drive my blade through your heart and tell the world it was
the deed of your lover.”
Baldos groaned. His adversary, encouraged by the change in the
situation, pressed him sorely.
“Don't you dare to touch me, Count Marlanx. I know you!” she
hissed.” I know what you would do with me. It is not for Graustark that
you seek his life.”
The sword came nearer. The words died in her throat. She grew faint.
Terror paralyzed her. Suddenly, her heart gave a great thump of joy.
The resourcefulness of the trapped was surging to her relief. The valor
of the South leaped into life. The exhilaration of conflict beat down
all her fears. “Take away that sword, then, please,” she cried, her
voice trembling, but not with terror now; it was exultation.” Will you
promise to spare his life? Will you swear to let him go, if I—”
“No, no, never! God forbid!” implored Baldos.
“Ha, ha!” chuckled the man in the cloak. “Spare his life! Oh, yes;
after my master has revelled in your charms. How do you like that, my
“You infernal scoundrel! I'll settle you yet!” Baldos fairly fumed
with rage. Gathering himself together for a final effort, he rushed
madly on his rapidly-weakening antagonist.
“Baldos!” she cried hopelessly and in a tone of resignation. “I must
do it! It is the only way!”
The man in the cloak as well as Baldos was deceived by the girl's
cry. He immediately lowered his sword. The lantern dropped from
Beverly's hands and clattered to the floor. At the same instant she
drew from her pocket her revolver, which she had placed there before
leaving the castle, and fired point blank at him. The report sounded
like a thunder clap in their ears. It was followed quickly by a sharp
cry and imprecation from the lips of her persecutor, who fell, striking
his head with a terrible force on the stones.
Simultaneously, there was a groan and the noise of a limp body
slipping to the ground, and, Baldos, victor at last, turned in fear and
trembling to find Beverly standing unhurt staring at the black mass at
“Thank God! You are safe!” Grasping her hand he led her out of the
darkness into the moonlight.
Not a word was spoken as they ran swiftly on until they reached a
little clump of trees, not far from one of the gates. Here Baldos
gently released her hand. She was panting for breath; but he realized
she must not be allowed to risk a moment's delay. She must pass the
sentry at once.
“Have you the watchword?” he eagerly asked.
“Watchword?” she repeated feebly.
“Yes, the countersign for the night. It is Ganlook. Keep your face
well covered with your hood. Advance boldly to the gates and give the
word. There will be no trouble. The guard is used to pleasure seekers
returning at all hours of night.”
“Is he dead?” she asked timorously, returning to the scene of
“Only wounded, I think, as are the other men, though they all
He went with her as close to the gate as he thought safe. Taking her
hand he kissed it fervently. “Good-bye! It won't be for long!” and
She stood still and lifeless, staring after him, for ages, it
seemed. He was gone. Gone forever, no doubt. Her eyes grew wilder and
wilder with the pity of it all. Pride fled incontinently. She longed to
call him back. Then it occurred to her that he was hurrying off to that
other woman. No, he said he would return. She must be brave, true to
herself, whatever happened. She marched boldly up to the gate, gave the
countersign and passed through, not heeding the curious glances cast
upon her by the sentry; turned into the castle, up the grand staircase,
and fled to the princess's bed-chamber.
Beverly, trembling and sobbing, threw herself in the arms of the
princess. Incoherently, she related all that had happened, then
After she had been restored, the promise of Yetive to protect her,
whatever happened, comforted her somewhat.
“It must have been Marlanx,” moaned Beverly.
“Who else could it have been?” replied the princess, who was visibly
Summoning all her courage, she went on: “First, we must find out if
he is badly hurt. We'll trust to luck. Cheer up!” She touched a bell.
There came a knock at the door. A guard was told to enter. “Ellos,” she
exclaimed, “did you hear a shot fired a short time ago?”
“I thought I did, your highness, but was not sure.”
“Baldos, the guard, was escaping by the secret passage,” continued
the princess, a wonderful inspiration coming to her rescue. “He passed
through the chapel. Miss Calhoun was there. Alone, and single-handed,
she tried to prevent him. It was her duty. He refused to obey her
command to stop and she followed him into the tunnel and fired at him.
I'm afraid you are too late to capture him, but you may—, Oh, Beverly,
how plucky you were to follow him! Go quickly, Ellos! Search the tunnel
and report at once.” As the guard saluted, with wonder, admiration and
unbelief, he saw the two conspirators locked in each other's arms.
Presently he returned and reported that the guards could find no
trace of anyone in the tunnel, but that they found blood on the floor
near the exit and that the door was wide open.
The two girls looked at each other in amazement. They were
dumbfounded, but a great relief was glowing in their eyes.
“Ellos,” inquired the princess, considerably less agitated, “does
any one else know of this?”
“No, your highness, there was no one on guard but Max, Baldos, and
“Well, for the present, no one else must know of his flight. Do you
understand? Not a word to any one. I, myself, will explain when the
proper time comes. You and Max have been very careless, but I suppose
you should not be punished. He has tricked us all. Send Max to me at
“Yes, your highness,” said Ellos, and he went away with his head
swimming. Max, the other guard, received like orders and then the two
young women sank limply upon a divan.
“Oh, how clever you are, Yetive,” came from the American girl. “But
“We may expect to hear something disagreeable from Count Marlanx, my
dear,” murmured the perplexed, but confident princess, “but I think we
have the game in our own hands, as you would say in America.”
CHAPTER XXVI. THE DEGRADATION OF
“Aunt Fanny, what is that white thing sticking under the window?”
demanded Beverly late the next morning. She was sitting with her face
to the windows while the old negress dressed her hair.
“Looks lak a love letteh. Miss Bev'ly,” was the answer, as Aunt
Fanny gingerly placed an envelope in her mistress's hand. Beverly
looked at it in amazement. It was unmistakably a letter, addressed to
her, which had been left at her window some time in the night. Her
heart gave a thump and she went red with anticipated pleasure. With
eager fingers she tore open the envelope. The first glance at the
contents brought disappointment to her face. The missive was from Count
Marlanx; but it was a relief to find that he was very much alive and
kicking. As she read on, there came a look of perplexity which was
succeeded by burning indignation. The man in the cloak was preparing to
“Your secret is mine. I know all that happened in the chapel and
underground passage. You have betrayed Graustark in aiding this man to
escape. The plot was cleverly executed, but you counted without the
jealous eye of love. You can save yourself and your honor, and perhaps
your princess, but the conditions are mine. This time there can be no
trifling. I want you to treat me fairly. God help you if you refuse.
Give me the answer I want and your secret is safe, I will shield you
with my life. At eleven o'clock I shall come to see you. I have in my
possession a document that will influence you. You will do well to keep
a close mouth until you have seen this paper.”
This alarming note was all that was needed to restore fire to the
lagging blood of the American girl. Its effect was decidedly contrary
to that which Marlanx must have anticipated. Instead of collapsing,
Beverly sprang to her feet with energy and life in every fiber. Her
eyes were flashing brightly, her body quivering with the sensations of
“That awful old wretch!” she cried, to Aunt Fanny's amazement. “He
is the meanest human being in all the world. But he's making the
mistake of his life, isn't he, Aunt Fanny? Oh, of course you don't know
what it is, so never mind. We've got a surprise for him. I'll see him
at eleven o'clock, and then—” she smiled quite benignly at the thought
of what she was going to say to him. Beverly felt very secure in the
shadow of the princess.
A clatter of horses' hoofs on the parade-ground drew her to the
balcony. What she saw brought joy to her heart. Lorry and Anguish,
muddy and disheveled, were dismounting before the castle.
“Ah, this is joy! Now there are three good Americans here. I'm not
afraid,” she said bravely. Aunt Fanny nodded her head in approval,
although she did not know what it was all about. Curiosity more than
alarm made Beverly eager to see the document which old Marlanx held in
reserve for her. She determined to met him at eleven.
A message from the princess announced the unexpected return of the
two Americans. She said they were (to use Harry Anguish's own
expression) “beastly near starvation” and clamored for substantial
breakfasts, Beverly was urged to join them and to hear the latest news
from the frontier.
Lorry and Anguish were full of the excitement on which they had
lived for many hours. They had found evidence of raids by the
Dawsbergen scouts and had even caught sight of a small band of fleeing
horsemen. Lorry reluctantly admitted that Gabriel's army seemed loyal
to him and that there was small hope of a conflict being averted, as he
had surmised, through the defection of the people. He was surprised but
not dismayed when Yetive told him certain portions of the story in
regard to Marlanx; and, by no means averse to seeing the old man
relegated to the background, heartily endorsed the step taken by his
wife. He was fair enough, however, to promise the general a chance to
speak in his own defense, if he so desired. He had this in view when he
requested Marlanx to come to the castle at eleven o'clock for
“Gabriel is devoting most of his energy now to hunting that poor
Dantan into his grave,” said Anguish. “I believe he'd rather kill his
half-brother than conquer Graustark. Why, the inhuman monster has set
himself to the task of obliterating everything that reminds him of
Dantan. We learned from spies down there that he issued an order for
the death of Dantan's sister, a pretty young thing named Candace,
because he believed she was secretly aiding her fugitive brother. She
escaped from the palace in Serros a week ago, and no one knows what has
become of her. There's a report that she was actually killed, and that
the story of her flight is a mere blind on the part of Gabriel.”
“He would do anything,” cried Yetive.” Poor child; they say she is
like her English mother and is charming.”
“That would set Gabriel against her, I fancy,” went on Anguish.
“And, by the way, Miss Calhoun, we heard something definite about your
friend, Prince Dantan. It is pretty well settled that he isn't Baldos
of the guard. Dantan was seen two days ago by Captain Dangloss's men.
He was in the Dawsbergen pass and they talked with him and his men.
There was no mistake this time. The poor, half-starved chap confessed
to being the prince and begged for food for himself and his followers,”
“I tried to find him, and, failing in that, left word in the pass
that if he would but cast his lot with us in this trouble we soon would
restore him to his throne,” said Lorry. “He may accept and we shall
have him turning up here some day, hungry for revenge. And now, my dear
Beverly, how are you progressing with the excellent Baldos, of whom we
cannot make a prince, no matter how hard we try?”
Beverly and the princess exchanged glances in which consternation
was difficult to conceal. It was clear to Beverly that Yetive had not
told her husband of the escape.
“I don't know anything about Baldos,” she answered steadily. “Last
night someone shot at him in the park.”
“The deuce you say!”
“In order to protect him until you returned, Gren, I had him
transferred to guard duty inside the castle,” explained the princess.”
It really seemed necessary. General Marlanx expects to present formal
charges against him this morning, so I suppose we shall have to put him
in irons for a little while. It seems too bad, doesn't it, Gren?”
“Yes. He's as straight as a string, I'll swear,” said Lorry
“I'll bet he wishes he were safely out of this place,” ventured
Anguish, and two young women busied themselves suddenly with their
“The chance is he's sorry he ever came into it,” said Lorry
While they were waiting for Marlanx the young Duke of Mizrox was
announced. The handsome Axphainian came with relief and dismay
struggling for mastery in his face.
“Your highness,” he said, after the greetings, “I am come to inform
you that Graustark has one prince less to account for. Axphain has
found her fugitive.”
“When?” cried the princess and Beverly in one voice and with
astonishing eagerness, not unmixed with dismay.
“Three days ago,” was the reply.
“Oh,” came in deep relief from Beverly as she sank back into her
chair. The same fear had lodged in the hearts of the two fair
conspirators—that they had freed Baldos only to have him fall into the
hands of his deadliest foes.
“I have a message by courier from my uncle in Axphain,” said Mizrox.
“He says that Frederic was killed near Labbot by soldiers, after making
a gallant fight, on last Sunday night. The Princess Volga is rejoicing,
and has amply rewarded his slayers. Poor Frederic! He knew but little
happiness, in this life.”
There was a full minute of reflection before any of his hearers
expressed the thought that had framed itself in every mind.
“Well, since Dantan and Frederic are accounted for, Baldos is
absolutely obliged to be Christobal,” said Anguish resignedly.
“He's just Baldos,” observed Beverly, snuffing out the faint hope
that had lingered so long. Then she said to herself: “And I don't care,
either. I only wish he were back here again. I'd be a good deal nicer
Messengers flew back and forth, carrying orders from the castle to
various quarters. The ministers were called to meet at twelve o'clock.
Underneath all the bustle there was a tremendous impulse of American
cunning, energy and resourcefulness. Everyone caught the fever.
Reserved old diplomats were overwhelmed by their own enthusiasm;
custom-bound soldiers forgot the hereditary caution and fell into the
ways of the new leaders without a murmur. The city was wild with
excitement, for all believed that the war was upon them. There was but
one shadow overhanging the glorious optimism of Graustark—the ugly,
menacing attitude of Axphain. Even the Duke of Mizrox could give no
assurance that his country would remain neutral.
Colonel Quinnox came to the castle in haste and perturbation. It was
he who propounded the question that Yetive and Beverly were expecting:
“Where is Baldos?” Of course, the flight of the suspected guard was
soon a matter of certainty. A single imploring glance from the
princess, meant for the faithful Quinnox alone, told him as plainly as
words could have said that she had given the man his freedom. And
Quinnox would have died a thousand times to protect the secret of his
sovereign, for had not twenty generations of Quinnoxes served the
rulers of Graustark with unflinching loyalty? Baron Dangloss may have
suspected the trick, but he did not so much as blink when the princess
instructed him to hunt high and low for the fugitive.
Marlanx came at eleven. Under the defiant calmness of his bearing
there was lurking a mighty fear. His brain was scourged by thoughts of
impending disgrace. The princess had plainly threatened his
degradation. After all these years, he was to tremble with shame and
humiliation; he was to cringe where he had always boasted of
domineering power. And besides all this, Marlanx had a bullet wound in
his left shoulder! The world could not have known, for he knew how to
He approached the slender, imperious judge in the council-chamber
with a defiant leer on his face. If he went down into the depths he
would drag with him the fairest treasure he had coveted in all his
years of lust and desire.
“A word with you,” he said in an aside to Beverly, as she came from
the council-chamber, in which she felt she should not sit. She stopped
and faced him. Instinctively she looked to see if he bore evidence of a
wound. She was positive that her bullet had struck him the night
before, and that Marlanx was the man with the cloak.
“Well?” she said coldly. He read her thoughts and smiled, even as
his shoulder burned with pain.
“I will give you the chance to save yourself. I love you. I want
you. I must have you for my own,” he was saying.
“Stop, sir! It may be your experience in life that women kneel to
you when you command. It may be your habit to win what you set about to
win. But you have a novel way of presenting your devoire, I must
say. Is this the way in which you won the five unfortunates whom you
want me to succeed? Did you scare them into submission?”
“No, no! I cared nothing for them. You are the only one I ever
“Really, Count Marlanx, you are most amusing,” she interrupted, with
a laugh that stung him to the quick.” You have been unique in your
love-making. I am not used to your methods. Besides, after having known
them, I'll confess that I don't like them in the least. You may have
been wonderfully successful in the past, but you were not dealing with
an American girl. I have had enough of your insults. Go! Go in and
“Have a care, girl!” he snarled. “I have it in my power to crush
“Pooh!” came scornfully from her lips. “If you molest me further I
shall call Mr. Lorry. Let me pass!”
“Just glance at this paper, my beauty. I fancy you'll change your
tune. It goes before the eyes of the council, unless you—” he paused
Beverly took the document and with dilated eyes read the revolting
charges against her honor. Her cheeks grew white with anger, then
flushed a deep crimson.
“You fiend!” she cried, glaring at him so fiercely that he
instinctively shrank back, the vicious grin dying in his face. “I'll
show you how much I fear you. I shall give this revolting thing to the
princess. She may read it to the cabinet, for all I care. No one will
believe you. They'll kill you for this!”
She turned and flew into the presence of the princess and her
ministers. Speeding to the side of Yetive, she thrust the paper into
her hands. Surprise and expectancy filled the eyes of all assembled.
“Count Marlanx officially charges me with—with—Read it, your
highness,” she cried distractedly.
Yetive read it, pale-faced and cold. A determined gleam appeared in
her eyes as she passed the document to her husband.
“Allode,” Lorry said to an attendant, after a brief glance at its
revolting contents, “ask Count Marlanx to appear here instantly. He is
outside the door.”
Lorry's anger was hard to control. He clenched his hands and there
was a fine suggestion of throttling in the way he did it. Marlanx,
entering the room, saw that he was doomed. He had not expected Beverly
to take this appalling step. The girl, tears in her eyes, rushed to a
window, hiding her face from the wondering ministers. Her courage
suddenly failed her. If the charges were read aloud before these men it
seemed to her that she never could lift her eyes again. A mighty
longing for Washington, her father and the big Calhoun boys, rushed to
her heart as she stood there and awaited the crash. But Lorry was a
“Gentlemen,” he said quietly,” Count Marlanx has seen fit to charge
Miss Calhoun with complicity in the flight of Baldos. I will not read
the charges to you. They are unworthy of one who has held the highest
position in the army of Graustark. He has—”
“Read this, my husband, before you proceed further,” said Yetive,
thrusting into his hand a line she had written with feverish haste.
Lorry smiled gravely before he read aloud the brief edict which removed
General Marlanx from the command of the army of Graustark.
“Is this justice?” protested Marlanx angrily. “Will you not give me
a hearing? I beseech—”
“Silence!” commanded the princess. “What manner of hearing did you
expect to give Miss Calhoun? It is enough, sir. There shall be no
cowards in my army.”
“Coward?” he faltered. “Have I not proved my courage on the field of
battle? Am I to be called a—”
“Bravery should not end when the soldier quits the field of battle.
You have had a hearing. Count Marlanx. I heard the truth about you last
“From Miss Calhoun?” sneered he viciously. “I must be content to
accept this dismissal, your highness. There is no hope for me. Some day
you may pray God to forgive you for the wrong you have done your most
loyal servant. There is no appeal from your decision; but as a subject
of Graustark I insist that Miss Calhoun shall be punished for aiding in
the escape of this spy and traitor. He is gone, and it was she who led
him through the castle to the outer world. She cannot deny this,
gentlemen. I defy her to say she did not accompany Baldos through the
secret passage last night.”
“It will do no harm to set herself right by denying this
accusation,” suggested Count Halfont solemnly. Every man in the cabinet
and army had hated Marlanx for years. His degradation was not
displeasing to them. They would ask no questions.
But Beverly Calhoun stood staring out of the window, out upon the
castle park and its gay sunshine. She did not answer, for she did not
hear the premier's words. Her brain was whirling madly with other
thoughts. She was trying to believe her eyes.
“The spy is gone,” cried Marlanx, seeing a faint chance to redeem
himself at her expense. “She can not face my charge. Where is your
friend, Miss Calhoun?”
Beverly faced them with a strange, subdued calmness in her face. Her
heart was throbbing wildly in the shelter of this splendid disguise.
“I don't know what all this commotion is about,” she said. “I only
know that I have been dragged into it shamelessly by that old man over
there, If you step to the window you may see Baldos himself. He has not
fled. He is on duty!”
Baldos was striding steadily across the park in plain view of all.
CHAPTER XXVII. THE PRINCE OF
Both Yetive and Beverly experienced an amazing sense of relief. They
did not stop to consider why or how he had returned to the castle
grounds. It was sufficient that he was actually there, sound, well, and
“I dare say Count Marlanx will withdraw his infamous charge against
our guest,” said Lorry, with deadly directness. Marlanx was mopping his
damp forehead. His eyes were fastened upon the figure of the guard, and
there was something like awe in their steely depths. It seemed to him
that the supernatural had been enlisted against him.
“He left the castle last night,” he muttered, half to himself.
“There seems to be no doubt of that,” agreed Gaspon, the grand
treasurer. “Colonel Quinnox reports his strange disappearance.” Clearly
the case was a puzzling one. Men looked at one another in wonder and
“I think I understand the situation,” exclaimed Marlanx, suddenly
triumphant. “It bears out all that I have said. Baldos left the castle
last night, as I have sworn, but not for the purpose of escaping. He
went forth to carry Information to our enemies. Can anyone doubt that
he is a spy? Has he not returned to carry out his work? And now,
gentlemen, I ask you—would he return unless he felt secure of
It was a facer, Yetive and Beverly felt as though a steel trap
suddenly had been closed down upon them. Lorry and Anguish were
undeniably disconcerted. There was a restless, undecided movement among
“Colonel Quinnox, will you fetch Baldos to the verandah at once?”
asked Lorry, his quick American perception telling him that immediate
action was necessary. “It is cooler out there.” He gave Beverly a look
of inquiry. She flushed painfully, guiltily, and he was troubled in
“As a mere subject, I demand the arrest of this man,” Marlanx was
saying excitedly. “We must go to the bottom of this hellish plot to
“My dear count,” said Anguish, standing over him, “up to this time
we have been unable to discern any reasons for or signs of the
treachery you preach about. I don't believe we have been betrayed at
“But I have absolute proof, sir,” grated the count.
“I'd advise you to produce it. We must have something to work on,
“What right have you to give advice, sir? You are not one of us. You
are a meddler—an impertinent alien. Your heart is not with Graustark,
as mine is. How long must we endure the insolence of these Americans?”
The count was fuming with anger. As might have been expected, the
easy-going Yankees laughed unreservedly at his taunt. The princess was
pale with indignation.
“Count Marlanx, you will confine your remarks to the man whom you
have charged with treachery,” she said. “You have asked for his arrest,
and you are to be his accuser. At the proper time you will produce the
proof. I warn you now that if you do not sustain these charges, the
displeasure of the crown will fall heavily upon you.”
“I only ask your highness to order his arrest,” he said, controlling
himself. “He is of the castle guard and can be seized only on your
“Baldos is at the castle steps, your highness,” said Colonel Quinnox
from the doorway. The entire party left the council-chamber and passed
out to the great stone porch. It must be confessed that the princess
leaned rather heavily upon Lorry's arm. She and Beverly trembled with
anxiety as they stood face to face with the tall guard who had come
back to them so mysteriously.
Baldos stood at the foot of the stone steps, a guard on each side of
him. One of these was the shamefaced Haddan, Dangloss's watchman, whose
vigil had been a failure. The gaze of the suspected guard purposely
avoided that of Beverly Calhoun. He knew that the slightest
communication between them would be misunderstood and magnified by the
“Baldos,” said Lorry, from the top step, “it has come to our ears
that you left the castle surreptitiously last night. Is it true that
you were aided by Miss Calhoun?” Baldos looked thankful for this
eminently leading question. In a flash it gave him the key to the
situation. Secretly he was wondering what emotions possessed the
slender accomplice who had said good-bye to him not so many hours
before at the castle gate. He knew that she was amazed, puzzled by his
sudden return; he wondered if she were glad. His quick wits saw that a
crisis had arrived. The air was full of it. The dread of this very
moment was the thing which had drawn him into the castle grounds at
early dawn. He had watched for his chance to glide in unobserved, and
had snatched a few hours' sleep in the shelter of the shrubbery near
the park wall.
“It is not true,” he said clearly, in answer to Lorry's question.
Both Beverly and Marlanx started as the sharp falsehood fell from his
lips. “Who made such an accusation?” he demanded.
“Count Marlanx is our informant.”
“Then Count Marlanx lies,” came coolly from the guard. A snarl of
fury burst from the throat of the deposed general. His eyes were red
and his tongue was half palsied by rage.
“Dog! Dog!” he shouted, running down the steps. “Infamous dog! I
swear by my soul that he—”
“Where is your proof, Count Marlanx?” sternly interrupted Lorry.
“You have made a serious accusation against our honored guest. It
cannot be overlooked.”
Marlanx hesitated a moment, and then threw his bomb at the feet of
“I was in the chapel when she opened the secret panel for him.”
Not a word was uttered for a full minute. It was Beverly Calhoun who
spoke first. She was as calm as a spring morning.
“If all this be true, Count Marlanx, may I ask why you, the head of
Graustark's army, did not intercept the spy when you had the chance?”
Marlanx flushed guiltily. The question had caught him unprepared. He
dared not acknowledge his presence there with the hired assassins.
“I—I was not in a position to restrain him,” he fumbled.
“You preferred to wait until he was safely gone before making the
effort to protect Graustark from his evil designs. Is that it? What was
your object in going to the chapel? To pray? Besides, what right had
you to enter the castle in the night?” she asked ironically.
“Your highness, may I be heard?” asked Baldos easily. He was smiling
up at Yetive from the bottom of the steps. She nodded her head a trifle
uneasily. “It is quite true that I left the castle by means of your
secret passage last night.”
“There!” shrieked Marlanx. “He admits that he—”
“But I wish to add that Count Marlanx is in error when he says that
Miss Calhoun was my accomplice. His eyes were not keen in the darkness
of the sanctuary. Perhaps he is not accustomed to the light one finds
in a chapel at the hour of two. Will your highness kindly look in the
direction of the southern gate? Your august gaze may fall upon the
reclining figure of a boy asleep, there in the shadow of the friendly
cedar. If Count Marlanx had looked closely enough last night he might
have seen that it was a boy who went with me and not—”
“Fool! Don't you suppose I know a woman's skirts?” cried the Iron
“Better than most men, I fancy,” calmly responded Baldos. “My young
friend wore the garments of a woman, let me add.”
Lorry came down and grasped Baldos by the arm. His eyes were stern
and accusing. Above, Yetive and Beverly had clasped hands and were
looking on dumbly. What did Baldos mean?
“Then, you did go through the passage? And you were accompanied by
this boy, a stranger? How comes this, sir?” demanded Lorry. Every eye
was accusing the guard at this juncture. The men were descending the
steps as if to surround him.
“It is not the first time that I have gone through the passage,
sir,” said Baldos, amused by the looks of consternation. “I'd advise
you to close it. Its secret is known to more than one person. It is
known, by the way, to Prince Gabriel of Dawsbergen. It is known to
every member of the band with which Miss Calhoun found me when she was
a princess. Count Marlanx is quite right when he says that I have gone
in and out of the castle grounds from time to time. He is right when he
says that I have communicated with men inside and outside of these
grounds. But he is wrong when he accuses Miss Calhoun of being
responsible for or even aware of my reprehensible conduct. She knew
nothing of all this, as you may judge by taking a look at her face at
Beverly's face was a study in emotions. She was looking at him with
dilated eyes. Pain and disappointment were concentrated in their
expressive gray depths; indignation was struggling to master the love
and pity that had lurked in her face all along. It required but a
single glance to convince the most skeptical that she was ignorant of
these astounding movements on the part of her protege. Again every eye
was turned upon the bold, smiling guardsman.
“I have been bitterly deceived in you,” said Lorry, genuine pain in
his voice. “We trusted you implicitly. I didn't think it of you,
Baldos. After all, it is honorable of you to expose so thoroughly your
own infamy in order to acquit an innocent person who believed in you.
You did not have to come back to the castle. You might have escaped
punishment by using Miss Calhoun as a shield from her highness's wrath.
But none the less you compel me to give countenance to all that Count
Marlanx has said.”
“I insist that it was Miss Calhoun who went through the panel with
him,” said Marlanx eagerly.
“If it was this boy who accompanied you, what was his excuse in
returning to the castle after you had fled?”
“He came back to watch over Miss Calhoun while she slept. It was my
sworn duty to guard her from the man who had accused her. This boy is a
member of the band to which I belong and he watched while I went forth
on a pretty business of my own. It will be useless to ask what that
business was. I will not tell. Nor will the boy. You may kill us, but
our secrets die with us. This much I will say: we have done nothing
disloyal to Graustark. You may believe me or not. It has been necessary
for me to communicate with my friends, and I found the means soon after
my arrival here. All the foxes that live in the hills have not four
legs,” he concluded significantly.
“You are a marvel!” exclaimed Lorry, and there was real admiration
in his voice. “I'm sorry you were fool enough to come back and get
caught like this. Don't look surprised, gentlemen, for I believe that
in your hearts you admire him quite as much as I do.” The faint smile
that went the rounds was confirmation enough. Nearly every man there
had been trained in English-speaking lands and not a word of the
conversation had been missed.
“I expected to be arrested, Mr. Lorry,” said Baldos calmly. “I knew
that the warrant awaited me. I knew that my flight of last night was no
secret. I came back willingly, gladly, your highness, and now I am
ready to face my accuser. There is nothing for me to fear.”
“And after you have confessed to all these actions? By George, I
like your nerve,” exclaimed Lorry.
“I have been amply vindicated,” cried Marlanx. “Put him in
irons—and that boy, too.”
“We'll interview the boy,” said Lorry, remembering the lad beneath
“See; he's sleeping so sweetly,” said Baldos gently. “Poor lad, he
has not known sleep for many hour. I suppose he'll have to be awakened,
poor little beggar.”
Colonel Quinnox and Haddan crossed the grounds to the big cedar. The
boy sprang to his feet at their call and looked wildly about. Two big
hands clasped his arms, and a moment later the slight figure came
pathetically across the intervening space between the stalwart guards.
“Why has he remained here, certain of arrest?” demanded Lorry in
“He was safer with me than anywhere else, Mr. Lorry. You may shoot
me a thousand times, but I implore you to deal gently with my unhappy
friend. He has done no wrong. The clothes you see upon that trembling
figure are torturing the poor heart more than you can know. The burning
flush upon that cheek is the red of modesty. Your highness and
gentlemen, I ask you to have pity on this gentle friend of mine.” He
threw his arm about the shoulder of the slight figure as it drooped
against him. “Count Marlanx was right. It was a woman he saw with me in
the chapel last night.”
The sensation created by this simple statement was staggering. The
flushed face was unmistakably that of a young girl, a tender, modest
thing that shrank before the eyes of a grim audience. Womanly instinct
impelled Yetive to shield the timid masquerader. Her strange
association with Baldos was not of enough consequence in the eyes of
this tender ruler to check the impulse of gentleness that swept over
her. That the girl was guiltless of any wrong-doing was plain to be
seen. Her eyes, her face, her trembling figure furnished proof
conclusive. The dark looks of the men were softened when the arm of the
princess went about the stranger and drew her close.
“Bah! Some wanton or other!” sneered Marlanx. “But a pretty one, by
the gods. Baldos has always shown his good taste,”
Baldos glared at him like a tiger restrained. “Before God, you will
have those words to unsay,” he hissed.
Yetive felt the slight body of the girl quiver and then grow tense.
The eyes of Baldos now were fixed on the white, drawn face of
Beverly Calhoun, who stood quite alone at the top of the steps. She
began to sway dizzily and he saw that she was about to fall. Springing
away from the guards, he dashed up the steps to her side. His arm
caught her as she swayed, and its touch restored strength to her—the
strength of resentment and defiance.
“Don't!” she whispered hoarsely.
“Have courage,” he murmured softly. “It will all be well. There is
“So this is the woman!” she cried bitterly.
“Yes. You alone are dearer to me than she,” he uttered hurriedly.
“I can't believe a word you say.”
“You will, Beverly. I love you. That is why I came back. I could not
leave you to meet it alone. Was I not right? Let them put me into
irons—let them kill me—”
“Come!” cried Colonel Quinnox, reaching his side at this instant.
“The girl will be cared for. You are a prisoner.”
“Wait!” implored Beverly, light suddenly breaking in upon her.
“Please wait, Colonel Quinnox.” He hesitated, his broad shoulders
between her and the gaping crowd below. She saw with grateful heart
that Yetive and Lorry were holding the steps as if against a warlike
foe. “Is she—is she your wife?”
“Good heavens, no!” gasped Baldos.
“Your sweetheart?” piteously.
“She is the sister of the man I serve so poorly,” he whispered.
Quinnox allowed them to walk a few paces down the flagging, away from
the curious gaze of the persons below.
“Oh, Baldos!” she cried, her heart suddenly melting. “Is she Prince
Dantan's sister?” Her hand clasped his convulsively, as he nodded
assent. “Now I do love you.”
“Thank God!” he whispered joyously. “I knew it, but I was afraid you
never would speak the words. I am happy—I am wild with joy.”
“But they may shoot you,” she shuddered. “You have condemned
yourself. Oh, I cannot talk to you as I want to—out here before all
these people. Don't move, Colonel Quinnox—they can't see through you.
Please stand still.”
“They will not shoot me, Beverly, dear. I am not a spy,” said
Baldos, looking down into the eyes of the slender boyish figure who
stood beside the princess. “It is better that I should die, however,”
he went on bitterly. “Life will not be worth living without you. You
would not give yourself to the lowly, humble hunter, so I—”
“I will marry you, Paul. I love you. Can't anything be done to—”
“It is bound to come out all right in the end,” he cried, throwing
up his head to drink in the new joy of living. “They will find that I
have done nothing to injure Graustark. Wait, dearest, until the day
gives up its news. It will not be long in coming. Ah, this promise of
yours gives me new life, new joy. I could shout it from the housetops!”
“But don't!” she cried nervously. “How does she happen to be here
with you? Tell me, Paul. Oh, isn't she a dear?”
“You shall know everything in time. Watch over her, dearest. I have
lied today for you, but it was a lie I loved. Care for her if you love
me. When I am free and in favor again you will—Ah!” he broke off
suddenly with an exclamation. His eyes were bent eagerly on the circle
of trees just beyond the parade-ground. Then his hand clasped hers in
one spasmodic grip of relief. An instant later he was towering, with
head bare, at the top of the steps, his hand pointed dramatically
toward the trees.
Ravone, still in his ragged uniform, haggard but eager, was standing
like a gaunt spectre in the sunlight that flooded the terrace. The
vagabond, with the eyes of all upon him, raised and lowered his arms
thrice, and the face of Baldos became radiant.
“Your highness,” he cried to Yetive, waving his hand toward the
stranger, “I have the honor to announce the Prince of Dawsbergen.”
CHAPTER XXVIII. A BOY DISAPPEARS
This startling announcement threw the company into the greatest
excitement. Baldos ran down the steps and to the side of the astonished
“Prince Dantan!” she cried, unbelieving.
He pushed the boyish figure aside and whispered earnestly into
Yetive's ear. She smiled warmly in response, and her eyes sparkled.
“And this, your highness, is his sister, the Princess Candace,” he
announced aloud, bowing low before the girl. At that instant she ceased
to be the timid, cringing boy. Her chin went up in truly regal state as
she calmly, even haughtily, responded to the dazed, half-earnest
salutes of the men. With a rare smile—a knowing one in which mischief
was paramount—she spoke to Baldos, giving him her hand to kiss.
“Ah, dear Baldos, you have achieved your sweetest triumph—the
theatrical climax to all this time of plotting. My brother's sister
loves you for all this. Your highness,” and she turned to Yetive with a
captivating smile, “is the luckless sister of Dantan welcome in your
castle? May I rest here in peace? It has been a bitterly long year,
this past week,” she sighed. Fatigue shot back into her sweet face, and
Yetive's love went out to her unreservedly. As she drew the slight
figure up the steps she turned and said to her ministers:
“I shall be glad to receive Prince Dantan in the throne-room,
without delay. I am going to put the princess to bed.”
“Your highness,” said Baldos from below, “may I be the first to
announce to you that there will be no war with Dawsbergen?”
This was too much. Even Marlanx looked at his enemy with something
like collapse in his eyes.
“What do you mean?” cried Lorry, seizing him by the arm.
“I mean that Prince Dantan is here to announce the recapture of
Gabriel, his half-brother. Before the hour is past your own men from
the dungeon in the mountains will come to report the return of the
fugitive. This announcement may explain in a measure the conduct that
has earned for me the accusation which confronts me. The men who have
retaken Gabriel are the members of that little band you have heard so
much about. Once I was its captain, Prince Dantan's chief of staff—the
commander of his ragged army of twelve. Miss Calhoun and fate brought
me into Edelweiss, but my loyalty to the object espoused by our
glorious little army has never wavered. Without me they have succeeded
in tricking and trapping Gabriel. It is more than the great army of
Graustark could do. Your highness will pardon the boast under the
“If this Is true, you have accomplished a miracle,” exclaimed Lorry,
profoundly agitated. “But can it be true? I can't believe it. It is too
good. It is too utterly improbable. Is that really Prince Dantan?”
“Assuming that it is Dantan, Grenfall,” said Yetive, “I fancy it is
not courteous in us to let him stand over there all alone and ignored.
Go to him, please.” With that she passed through the doors, accompanied
by Beverly and the young princess. Lorry and others went to greet the
emaciated visitor in rags and tags. Colonel Quinnox and Baron Dangloss
looked at one another in doubt and uncertainty. What were they to do
with Baldos, the prisoner?
“You are asking yourself what is to be done with me,” said Baldos
easily. “The order is for my arrest. Only the princess can annul it.
She has retired on a mission of love and tenderness. I would not have
her disturbed. There is nothing left for you to do but to place me in a
cell. I am quite ready, Colonel Quinnox. You will be wise to put me in
a place where I cannot hoodwink you further. You do not bear me a
grudge?” He laughed so buoyantly, so fearlessly that Quinnox forgave
him everything. Dangloss chuckled, an unheard-of condescension on his
part. “We shall meet again, Count Marlanx. You were not far wrong in
your accusations against me, but you have much to account for in
“This is all a clever trick,” cried the Iron Count. “But you shall
find me ready to accommodate you when the time comes.”
At this juncture Lorry and Count Halfont came up with Ravone. Baldos
would have knelt before his ruler had not the worn, sickly young man
“Your hand, Captain Baldos,” he said. “Most loyal of friends. You
have won far more than the honor and love I can bestow upon you. They
tell me you are a prisoner, a suspected traitor. It shall be my duty
and joy to explain your motives and your actions. Have no fear. The
hour will be short and the fruit much the sweeter for the bitterness.”
“Thunder!” muttered Harry Anguish. “You don't intend to slap him
into a cell, do you, Gren?” Baldos overheard the remark.
“I prefer that course, sir, until it has been clearly established
that all I have said to you is the truth. Count Marlanx must be
satisfied,” said he.
“And, Baldos, is all well with her?” asked the one we have known as
“She is being put to bed,” said Baldos, with a laugh so jolly that
Ravone's lean face was wreathed in a sympathetic smile. “I am ready,
gentlemen.” He marched gallantly away between the guards, followed by
Dangloss and Colonel Quinnox.
Naturally the Graustark leaders were cautious, even skeptical. They
awaited confirmation of the glorious news with varying emotions. The
shock produced by the appearance of Prince Dantan in the person of the
ascetic Ravone was almost stupefying. Even Beverly, who knew the
vagabond better than all the others, had not dreamed of Ravone as the
fugitive prince. Secretly she had hoped as long as she could that
Baldos would prove, after all, to be no other than Dantan. This hope
had dwindled to nothing, however, and she was quite prepared for the
revelation. She now saw that he was just what he professed to be—a
brave but humble friend of the young sovereign; and she was happy in
the knowledge that she loved him for what he was and not for what he
might have been.
“He is my truest friend,” said Ravone, as they led Baldos away.” I
am called Ravone, gentlemen, and I am content to be known by that name
until better fortune gives me the right to use another. You can hardly
expect a thing in rags to be called a prince. There is much to be
accomplished, much to be forgiven, before there is a Prince Dantan of
“You are faint and week,” said Lorry, suddenly perceiving his
plight. “The hospitality of the castle is yours. The promise we made a
few days ago holds good. Her highness will be proud to receive you when
you are ready to come to the throne-room. I am Grenfall Lorry. Come,
sir; rest and refresh yourself in our gladdened home. An hour ago we
were making ready to rush into battle; but your astonishing but welcome
news is calculated to change every plan we have made.”
“Undoubtedly, sir, it will. Dawsbergen hardly will make a fight to
release Gabriel. He is safe in your dungeons. If they want him now,
they must come to your strongholds. They will not do it, believe me,”
said Ravone simply. “Alas, I am faint and sore, as you suspect. May I
lie down for an hour or two? In that time you will have heard from your
wardens and my story will be substantiated. Then I shall be ready to
accept your hospitality as it is proffered. Outside your city gates my
humble followers lie starving. My only prayer is that you will send
them cheer and succor.”
No time was lost in sending to the gates for the strollers who had
accomplished the marvel of the day. The news of Gabriel's capture was
kept from the city's inhabitants until verification came from the
proper sources, but those in control of the affairs of state were
certain that Ravone's story was true. All operations came to a
standstill. The movements of the army were checked. Everything lay
quiescent under the shock of this startling climax.
“Hang it,” growled Anguish, with a quizzical grin, as Ravone
departed under the guidance of Count Halfont himself, “this knocks me
galley-west. I'd like to have had a hand in it. It must have been
great. How the devil do you think that miserable little gang of tramps
pulled it off?”
“Harry,” said Lorry disgustedly, “they taught us a trick or two.”
While the young princess was being cared for by Yetive's own maids
in one of the daintiest bedchambers of the castle, Beverly was engaged
in writing a brief but pointed letter to her Aunt Josephine, who was
still in St. Petersburg. She had persistently refused to visit
Edelweiss, but had written many imperative letters commanding her niece
to return to the Russian capital. Beverly now was recalling her
scattered wits in the effort to appease her aunt and her father at the
same time. Major Calhoun emphatically had ordered her to rejoin her
aunt and start for America at once. Yesterday Beverly would have begun
packing for the trip home. Now she was eager to remain in Graustark
indefinitely. She was so thrilled by joy and excitement that she
scarcely could hold the pen.
“Father says the United States papers are full of awful war scares
from the Balkans. Are we a part of the Balkans, Yetive?” she asked of
Yetive, with a puzzled frown, emphasizing the pronoun unconsciously.
“He says I'm to come right off home. Says he'll not pay a nickel of
ransom if the brigands catch me, as they did Miss Stone and that woman
who had the baby. He says mother is worried half to death. I'm just
going to cable him that it's all off. Because he says if war breaks out
he's going to send my brother Dan over here to get me. I'm having Aunt
Josephine send him this cablegram from St. Petersburg: 'They never
fight in Balkans. Just scare each other. Skip headlines, father dear.
Will be home soon. Beverly.' How does that sound? It will cost a lot,
but he brought it upon his own head. And we're not in the Balkans,
anyway. Aunt Joe will have a fit. Please call an A. D. T. boy,
princess. I want to send this message to St. Petersburg.”
When Candace entered the princess's boudoir half an hour later, she
was far from being the timid youth who first came to the notice of the
Graustark cabinet. She was now attired in one of Beverly's gowns, and
it was most becoming to her. Her short curly brown hair was done up
properly; her pink and white complexion was as clear as cream, now that
the dust of the road was gone; her dark eyes were glowing with the
wonder and interest of nineteen years, and she was, all in all, a most
enticing bit of femininity.
“You are much more of a princess now than when I first saw you,”
smiled Yetive, drawing her down upon the cushions of the window-seat
beside her. Candace was shy and diffident, despite her proper
“But she was such a pretty boy,” protested Dagmar. “You don't know
how attractive you were in those—”
Candace blushed. “Oh, they were awful, but they were comfortable.
One has to wear trousers if one intends to be a vagabond. I wore them
for more than a week.”
“You shall tell us all about it,” said Yetive, holding the girl's
hand in hers. “It must have been a most interesting week for you.”
“Oh, there is not much to tell, your highness,” said Candace,
suddenly reticent and shy. “My step-brother—oh, how I hate him—had
condemned me to die because he thought I was helping Dantan. And I
was helping him, too,—all that I could. Old Bappo, master of the
stables, who has loved me for a hundred years, he says, helped me to
escape from the palace at night. They were to have seized me the next
morning. Bappo has been master of the stables for more than forty
years. Dear old Bappo! He procured the boy's clothing for me and his
two sons accompanied me to the hills, where I soon found my brother and
his men. We saw your scouts and talked to them a day or two after I
became a member of the band. Bappo's boys are with the band now. But my
brother Dantan shall tell you of that. I was so frightened I could not
tell what was going am. I have lived in the open air for a week, but I
love it. Dantan's friends are all heroes. You will love them. Yesterday
old Franz brought a message into the castle grounds. It told Captain
Baldos of the plan to seize Gabriel, who was in the hills near your
city. Didn't you know of that? Oh, we knew it two days ago. Baldos knew
it yesterday. He met us at four o'clock this morning;—that is part of
us. I was sent on with Franz so that I should not see bloodshed if it
came to the worst. We were near the city gates Baldos came straight to
us. Isn't it funny that you never knew all these things? Then at
daybreak Baldos insisted on bringing me here to await the news from the
pass. It was safer, and besides, he said he had another object in
coming back at once.”
Beverly flushed warmly. The three women were crowding about the
narrator, eagerly drinking in her naive story.
“We came in through one of the big gates and not through the
underground passage. That was a fib,” said Candace, looking from one to
the other with a perfectly delicious twinkle in her eye. The
conspirators gulped and smiled guiltily. “Baldos says there is a very
mean old man here who is tormenting the fairy princess—not the real
princess, you know. He came back to protect her, which was very brave
of him, I am sure. Where is my brother?” she asked, suddenly anxious.
“He is with friends. Don't be alarmed, dear,” said Yetive.
“He is changing clothes, too? He needs clothes worse than I needed
these. Does he say positively that Gabriel has been captured?”
“Yes. Did you not know of it?”
“I was sure it would happen. You know I was not with them in the
Yetive was reflecting, a soft smile in her eyes.
“I was thinking of the time when I wore men's clothes,” she said.
“Unlike yours, mine were most uncomfortable. It was when I aided Mr.
Lorry in escaping from the tower. I wore a guard's uniform and rode
miles with him in a dark carriage before he discovered the truth.” She
blushed at the remembrance of that trying hour.
“And I wore boy's clothes at a girl's party once—my brother Dan's,”
said Beverly.” The hostess's brothers came home unexpectedly and I had
to sit behind a bookcase for an hour. I didn't see much fun in boy's
“You ought to wear them for a week,” said Candace, wise in
experience. “They are not so bad when you become accustomed to
them—that is, if they're strong and not so tight that they—”
“You all love Baldos, don't you?” interrupted Yetive. It was with
difficulty that the listeners suppressed their smiles.
“Better than anyone else. He is our idol. Oh, your highness, if what
he says is true that old man must be a fiend. Baldos a spy! Why, he has
not slept day or night for fear that we would not capture Gabriel so
that he might be cleared of the charge without appealing to—to my
brother. He has always been loyal to you,” the girl said with eager
“I know, dear, and I have known all along. He will be honorably
acquitted. Count Marlanx was overzealous. He has not been wholly wrong,
I must say in justice to him—”
“How can you uphold him, Yetive, after what he has said about me?”
cried Beverly, with blazing eyes.
“Beverly, Beverly, you know I don't mean that. He has been a
cowardly villain so far as you are concerned and he shall be punished,
never fear. I cannot condone that one amazing piece of wickedness on
“You, then, are the girl Baldos talks so much about?” cried Candace
eagerly. “You are Miss Calhoun, the fairy princess? I am so glad to
know you.” The young princess clasped Beverly's hand and looked into
her eyes with admiration and approval. Beverly could have crushed her
in her arms.
The sounds of shouting came up to the windows from below. Outside,
men were rushing to and fro and there were signs of mighty
demonstrations at the gates.
“The people have heard of the capture,” said Candace, as calmly as
though she were asking one to have a cup of tea.
There was a pounding at the boudoir door. It flew open
unceremoniously and in rushed Lorry, followed by Anguish. In the
hallway beyond a group of noblemen conversed excitedly with the women
of the castle.
“The report from the dungeons, Yetive,” cried Lorry joyously. “The
warden says that Gabriel is in his cell again! Here's to Prince
Ravone was standing in the door. Candace ran over and leaped into
CHAPTER XXIX. THE CAPTURE OF GABRIEL
Ravone was handsome in his borrowed clothes. He was now the clean,
immaculate gentleman instead of the wretched vagabond of the hills.
Even Beverly was surprised at the change in him. His erstwhile sad and
melancholy face was flushed and bright with happiness. The kiss he
bestowed upon the delighted Candace was tender in the extreme. Then,
putting her aside he strode over and gallantly kissed the hand of
Graustark's princess, beaming an ecstatic smile upon the merry Beverly
an instant later.
“Welcome, Prince Dantan,” said Yetive, “A thousand times welcome.”
“All Graustark is your throne, most glorious Yetive. That is why I
have asked to be presented here and not in the royal hall below,” said
“You will wait here with us, then, to hear the good news from our
warden,” said the princess. “Send the courier to me,” she commanded.
“Such sweet news should be received in the place which is dearest to me
in all Graustark.”
The ministers and the lords and ladies of the castle were assembled
in the room when Baron Dangloss appeared with the courier from the
prison. Count Marlanx was missing. He was on his way to the fortress, a
crushed, furious, impotent old man. In his quarters he was to sit and
wait for the blow that he knew could not be averted. In fear and
despair, hiding his pain and his shame, he was racking his brain for
means to lessen the force of that blow. He could withdraw the charges
against Baldos, but he could not soften the words he had said and
written of Beverly Calhoun. He was not troubling himself with fear
because of the adventures in the chapel and passage. He knew too well
how Yetive could punish when her heart was bitter against an evil-doer.
Graustark honored and protected its women.
The warden of the dungeons from which Gabriel had escaped months
before reported to the princess that the prisoner was again in custody.
Briefly he related that a party of men led by Prince Dantan had
appeared early that day bringing the fugitive prince, uninjured, but
crazed by rage and disappointment. They had tricked him into following
them through the hills, intent upon slaying his brother Dantan. There
could be no mistake as to Gabriel's identity. In conclusion, the warden
implored her highness to send troops up to guard the prison in the
mountain-side. He feared an attack in force by Gabriel's army.
“Your highness,” said Lorry, “I have sent instructions to Colonel
Braze, requiring him to take a large force of men into the pass to
guard the prison. Gabriel shall not escape again, though all Dawsbergen
comes after him.”
“You have but little to fear from Dawsbergen,” said Ravone, who was
seated near the princess. Candace at his side. “Messages have been
brought to me from the leading nobles of Dawsbergen, assuring me that
the populace is secretly eager for the old reign to be resumed. Only
the desperate fear of Gabriel and a few of his bloody but loyal
advisers holds them in check. Believe me, Dawsbergen's efforts to
release Gabriel will be perfunctory and halfhearted in the extreme. He
ruled like a madman. It was his intense, implacable desire to kill his
brother that led to his undoing. Will it be strange, your highness, if
Dawsbergen welcomes the return of Dantan in his stead?”
“The story! The story of his capture! Tell us the story,” came
eagerly from those assembled. Ravone leaned back languidly, his face
tired and drawn once more, as if the mere recalling of the hardships
past was hard to bear.
“First, your highness, may I advise you and your cabinet to send
another ultimatum to the people of Dawsbergen?” he asked. “This time
say to them that you hold two Dawsbergen princes in your hand. One
cannot and will not be restored to them. The other will be released on
demand. Let the embassy be directed to meet the Duke of Matz, the
premier. He is now with the army, not far from your frontier. May it
please your highness, I have myself taken the liberty of despatching
three trusted followers with the news of Gabriel's capture. The two
Bappos and Carl Vandos are now speeding to the frontier. Your embassy
will find the Duke of Matz in possession of all the facts.”
“The Duke of Matz, I am reliably informed, some day is to be
father-in-law to Dawsbergen,” smilingly said Yetive. “I shall not
wonder if he responds most favorably to an ultimatum.”
Ravone and Candace exchanged glances of amusement, the latter
breaking into a deplorable little gurgle of laughter.
“I beg to inform you that the duke's daughter has disdained the
offer from the crown,” said Ravone. “She has married Lieutenant
Alsanol, of the royal artillery, and is as happy as a butterfly.
Captain Baldos could have told you how the wayward young woman defied
her father and laughed at the beggar prince.”
“Captain Baldos is an exceedingly discreet person,” Beverly
volunteered. “He has told no tales out of school.”
“I am reminded of the fact that you gave your purse into my keeping
one memorable day—the day when we parted from our best of friends at
Ganlook's gates. I thought you were a princess, and you did not know
that I understood English. That was a sore hour for us. Baldos was our
life, the heart of our enterprise. Gabriel hates him as he hates his
own brother. Steadfastly has Baldos refused to join us in the plot to
seize Prince Gabriel. He once took an oath to kill him on sight, and I
was so opposed to this that he had to be left out of the final
“Please tell us how you succeeded in capturing that—your
half-brother,” cried Beverly, forgetting that it was another's place to
make the request. The audience drew near, eagerly attentive.
“At another time I shall rejoice in telling the story in detail. For
the present let me ask you to be satisfied with the statement that we
tricked him by means of letters into the insane hope that he could
capture and slay his half-brother. Captain Baldos suggested the plan.
Had he been arrested yesterday, I feel that it would have failed.
Gabriel was and is insane. We led him a chase through the Graustark
hills until the time was ripe for the final act. His small band of
followers fled at our sudden attack, and he was taken almost without a
struggle, not ten miles from the city of Edelweiss. In his mad ravings
we learned that his chief desire was to kill his brother and sister and
after that to carry out the plan that has long been in his mind. He was
coming to Edelweiss for the sole purpose of entering the castle by the
underground passage, with murder in his heart. Gabriel was coming to
kill the Princess Yetive and Mr. Lorry. He has never forgotten the love
he bore for the princess, nor the hatred he owes his rival. It was the
duty of Captain Baldos to see that he did not enter the passage in the
event that he eluded us in the hills.”
Later in the day the Princess Yetive received from the gaunt,
hawkish old man in the fortress a signed statement, withdrawing his
charges against Baldos the guard. Marlanx did not ask for leniency; it
was not in him to plead. If the humble withdrawal of charges against
Baldos could mitigate the punishment he knew Yetive would impose, all
well and good. If it went for naught, he was prepared for the worst.
Down there in his quarters, with wine before him, he sat and waited for
the end. He knew that there was but one fate for the man, great or
small, who attacked a woman in Graustark. His only hope was that the
princess might make an exception in the case of one who had been the
head of the army—but the hope was too small to cherish.
Baldos walked forth a free man, the plaudits of the people in his
ears. Baron Dangloss and Colonel Quinnox were beside the tall guard as
he came forward to receive the commendations and apologies of
Graustark's ruler and the warm promises of reward from the man he
He knelt before the two rulers who were holding court on the
veranda. The cheers of nobles, the shouts of soldiery, the exclamations
of the ladies did not turn his confident head. He was the born knight.
The look of triumph that he bestowed upon Beverly Calhoun, who lounged
gracefully beside the stone balustrade, brought the red flying to her
cheeks. He took something from his breast and held it gallantly to his
lips, before all the assembled courtiers. Beverly knew that it was a
CHAPTER XXX. IN THE GROTTO
The next morning a royal messenger came to Count Marlanx. He bore
two sealed letters from the princess. One briefly informed him that
General Braze was his successor as commander-in-chief of the army of
Graustark. He hesitated long before opening the other. It was equally
brief and to the point. The Iron Count's teeth came together with a
savage snap as he read the signature of the princess at the end. There
was no recourse. She had struck for Beverly Calhoun. He looked at his
watch. It was eleven o'clock. The edict gave him twenty-four hours from
the noon of that day. The gray old libertine despatched a messenger for
his man of affairs, a lawyer of high standing in Edelweiss. Together
they consulted until midnight. Shortly after daybreak the morning
following. Count Marlanx was in the train for Vienna, never to set foot
on Graustark's soil again. He was banished and his estates confiscated
by the government.
The ministry in Edelweiss was not slow to reopen negotiations with
Dawsbergen. A proclamation was sent to the prime minister, setting
forth the new order of affairs and suggesting the instant suspension of
hostile preparations and the restoration of Prince Dantan. Accompanying
this proclamation went a dignified message from Dantan, informing his
people that he awaited their commands. He was ready to resume the
throne that had been so desecrated. It would be his joy to restore
Dawsbergen to its once peaceful and prosperous condition. In the
meantime the Duke of Mizrox despatched the news to the Princess Volga
of Axphain, who was forced to abandon—temporarily, at least—her
desperate designs upon Graustark. The capture of Gabriel put an end to
her transparent plans.
“But she is bound to break out against us sooner or later and on the
slightest provocation,” said Yetive.
“I daresay that a friendly alliance between Graustark and Dawsbergen
will prove sufficient to check any ambitions she may have along that
line,” said Ravone significantly. “They are very near to each other
now, your highness. Friends should stand together.”
Beverly Calhoun was in suspense. Baldos had been sent off to the
frontier by Prince Dantan, carrying the message which could be trusted
to no other. He accompanied the Graustark ambassadors of peace as
Dantan's special agent. He went in the night time and Beverly did not
see him. The week which followed his departure was the longest she ever
spent. She was troubled in her heart for fear that he might not return,
despite the declaration she had made to him in one hysterical moment.
It was difficult for her to keep up the show of cheerfulness that was
expected of her. Reticence became her strongest characteristic. She
persistently refused to be drawn into a discussion of her relations
with the absent one. Yetive was piqued by her manner at first, but
wisely saw through the mask as time went on. She and Prince Dantan had
many quiet and interesting chats concerning Beverly and the erstwhile
guard. The prince took Lorry and the princess into his confidence. He
told them all there was to tell about his dashing friend and companion.
Beverly and the young Princess Candace became fast and loving
friends. The young girl's worship of her brother was beautiful to
behold. She huddled close to him on every occasion, and her dark eyes
bespoke adoration whenever his name was mentioned in her presence.
“If he doesn't come back pretty soon, I'll pack up and start for
home,” Beverly said to herself resentfully one day. “Then if he wants
to see me he'll have to come all the way to Washington. And I'm not
sure that he can do it, either. He's too disgustingly poor.”
“Wha's became o' dat Misteh Baldos, Miss Bev'ly?” asked Aunt Fanny
in the midst of these sorry cogitations. “Has he tuck hit int' his haid
to desert us fo' good? Seems to me he'd oughteh—”
“Now, that will do, Aunt Fanny,” reprimanded her mistress sternly.
“You are not supposed to know anything about affairs of state. So don't
At last she no longer could curb her impatience and anxiety. She
deliberately sought information from Prince Dantan. They were strolling
in the park on the seventh day of her inquisition.
“Have you heard from Paul Baldos? “she asked, bravely plunging into
“He is expected here tomorrow or the next day, Miss Calhoun. I am
almost as eager to see him as you are,” he replied, with a very pointed
“Almost? Well, yes, I'll confess that I am eager to see him. I never
knew I could long for anyone as much as I—Oh, well, there's no use
hiding it from you. I couldn't if I tried. I care very much for him.
You don't think it sounds silly for me to say such a thing, do you?
I've thought a great deal of him ever since the night at the Inn of the
Hawk and Raven. In my imagination I have tried to strip you of your
princely robes to place them upon him. But he is only Baldos, in spite
of it all. He knows that I care for him, and I know that he cares for
me. Perhaps he has told you.”
“Yes, he has confessed that he loves you, Miss Calhoun, and he
laments the fact that his love seems hopeless. Paul wonders in his
heart if it would be right in him to ask you to give up all you have of
wealth and pleasure to share a humble lot with him.”
“I love him. Isn't that enough? There is no wealth so great as that.
But,” and she pursed her mouth in pathetic despair, “don't you think
that you can make a noble or something of him and give him a station in
life worthy of his ambitions? He has done so much for you, you know.”
“I have nothing that I can give to him, he says. Paul Baldos asks
only that he may be my champion until these negotiations are ended.
Then he desires to be free to serve whom he will. All that I can do is
to let him have his way. He is a freelance and he asks no favors, no
“Well, I think he's perfectly ridiculous about it, don't you? And
yet, that is the very thing I like in him. I am only wondering how
we—I mean, how he is going to live, that's all.”
“If I am correctly informed he still has several months to serve in
the service for which he enlisted. You alone, I believe, have the power
to discharge him before his term expires,” said he meaningly.
That night Baldos returned to Edelweiss, ahead of the Graustark
delegation which was coming the next day with representatives from
Dawsbergen. He brought the most glorious news from the frontier. The
Duke of Matz and the leading dignitaries had heard of Gabriel's
capture, both through the Bappo boys and through a few of his henchmen
who had staggered into camp after the disaster. The news threw the
Dawsbergen diplomats into a deplorable state of uncertainty. Even the
men high in authority, while not especially depressed over the fall of
their sovereign, were in doubt as to what would be the next move in
their series of tragedies. Almost to a man they regretted the folly
which had drawn them into the net with Gabriel. Baldos reported that
the Duke of Matz and a dozen of the most distinguished men in
Dawsbergen were on their way to Edelweiss to complete arrangements for
peace and to lay their renunciation of Gabriel before Dantan in a
neutral court. The people of Dawsbergen had been clamoring long for
Dantan's restoration, and Baldos was commissioned to say that his
return would be the signal for great rejoicing. He was closeted until
after midnight with Dantan and his sister. Lorry and Princess Yetive
being called in at the end to hear and approve of the manifesto
prepared by the Prince of Dawsbergen. The next morning the word went
forth that a great banquet was to be given in the castle that night for
Prince Dantan and the approaching noblemen. The prince expected to
depart almost immediately thereafter to resume the throne in Serros.
Baldos was wandering through the park early in the morning. His
duties rested lightly upon his shoulders, but he was restless and
dissatisfied. The longing in his heart urged him to turn his eyes ever
and anon toward the balcony and then to the obstinate-looking castle
doors. The uniform of a Graustark guard still graced his splendid
figure. At last a graceful form was seen coming from the castle toward
the cedars. She walked bravely, but aimlessly. That was plain to be
seen. It was evident that she was and was not looking for someone.
Baldos observed with a thrill of delight that a certain red feather
stood up defiantly from the band of her sailor hat. He liked the way
her dark-blue walking-skirt swished in harmony with her lithe, firm
She was quite near before he advanced from his place among the
trees. He did not expect her to exhibit surprise or confusion and he
was not disappointed. She was as cool as a brisk spring morning. He did
not offer his hand, but, with a fine smile of contentment, bowed low
and with mock servility.
“I report for duty, your highness,” he said. She caught the ring of
gladness in his voice.
“Then I command you to shake hands with me,” she said brightly. “You
have been away, I believe?” with a delicious inflection.
“Yes, for a century or more, I'm sure.” Constraint fell upon them
suddenly. The hour had come for a definite understanding and both were
conquered by its importance. For the first time in his life he knew the
meaning of diffidence. It came over him as he looked helplessly into
the clear, gray, earnest eyes. “I love you for wearing that red
feather,” he said simply.
“And I loved you for wearing it,” she answered, her voice soft and
thrilling. He caught his breath joyously.
“Beverly,” as he bent over her, “you are my very life, my—”
“Don't, Paul!” she whispered, drawing away with an embarrassed
glance about the park. There were people to be seen on all sides. But
he had forgotten them. He thought only of the girl who ruled his heart.
Seeing the pain in his face, she hastily, even blushingly, said: “It is
so public, dear.”
He straightened himself with soldierly precision, but his voice
trembled as he tried to speak calmly in defiance to his eyes. “There is
the grotto—see! It is seclusion itself. Will you come with me? I must
tell you all that is in my heart. It will burst if I do not.”
Slowly they made their way to the fairy grotto deep in the thicket
of trees. It was Yetive's favorite dreaming place. Dark and cool and
musical with the rippling of waters, it was an ideal retreat. She
dropped upon the rustic bench that stood against the moss-covered wall
of boulders. With the gentle reserve of a man who reveres as well as
loves, Baldos stood above her. He waited and she understood. How unlike
most impatient lovers he was!
“You may sit beside me,” she said with a wistful smile of
acknowledgment. As he flung himself into the seat, his hand eagerly
sought hers, his courtly reserve gone to the winds.
“Beverly, dearest one, you never can know how much I love you,” he
whispered into her ear. “It is a deathless love, unconquerable,
unalterable. It is in my blood to love forever. Listen to me, dear one:
I come of a race whose love is hot and enduring. My people from time
immemorial have loved as no other people have loved. They have killed
and slaughtered for the sake of the glorious passion. Love is the
religion of my people. You must, you shall believe me when I say that I
will love you better than my soul so long as that soul exists. I loved
you the day I met you. It has been worship since that time.”
His passion carried her resistlessly away as the great waves sweep
the deck of a ship at sea. She was out in the ocean of love, far from
all else that was dear to her, far from all harbors save the mysterious
one to which his passion was piloting her through a storm of emotion.
“I have longed so to hold you in my arms, Beverly—even when you
were a princess and I lay in the hospital at Ganlook, my fevered arms
hungered for you. There never has been a moment that my heart has not
been reaching out in search of yours. You have glorified me, dearest,
by the promise you made a week ago. I know that you will not renounce
that precious pledge. It is in your eyes now—the eyes I shall worship
to the end of eternity. Tell me, though, with your own lips, your own
voice, that you will be my wife, mine to hold forever.”
For answer she placed her arms about his neck and buried her face
against his shoulder. There were tears in her gray eyes and there was a
sob in her throat. He held her close to his breast for an eternity, it
seemed to both, neither giving voice to the song their hearts were
singing. There was no other world than the fairy grotto.
“Sweetheart, I am asking you to make a great sacrifice,” he said at
last, his voice hoarse but tender. She looked up into his face
serenely. “Can you give up the joys, the wealth, the comforts of that
home across the sea to share a lowly cottage with me and my love? Wait,
dear,—do not speak until I am through. You must think of what your
friends will say. The love and life I offer you now will not be like
that which you always have known. It will be poverty and the dregs, not
riches and wine. It will be—”
But she placed her hand upon his lips, shaking her head
emphatically. The picture he was painting was the same one that she had
studied for days and days. Its every shadow was familiar to her, its
every unwholesome corner was as plain as day.
“The rest of the world may think what it likes, Paul,” she said. “It
will make no difference to me. I have awakened from my dream. My dream
prince is gone, and I find that it's the real man that I love. What
would you have me do? Give you up because you are poor? Or would you
have me go up the ladder of fame and prosperity with you, a humble but
adoring burden? I know you, dear. You will not always be poor. They may
say what they like. I have thought long and well, because I am not a
fool. It is the American girl who marries the titled foreigner without
love that is a fool. Marrying a poor man is too serious a business to
be handled by fools. I have written to my father, telling him that I am
going to marry you,” she announced. He gasped with unbelief.
“You have—already?” he cried.
“Of course. My mind has been made up for more than a week. I told it
to Aunt Fanny last night.”
“She almost died, that's all,” said she unblushingly. “I was afraid
to cable the news to father. He might stop me if he knew it in time. A
letter was much smarter.”
“You dear, dear little sacrifice,” he cried tenderly. “I will give
all my life to make you happy.”
“I am a soldier's daughter, and I can be a soldier's wife. I have
tried hard to give you up, Paul, but I couldn't. You are love's
soldier, dear, and it is a—a relief to surrender and have it over
They fell to discussing plans for the future. It all went smoothly
and airily until he asked her when he should go to Washington to claim
her as his wife. She gave him a startled, puzzled look.
“To Washington?” she murmured, turning very cold and weak. “You—you
won't have to go to Washington, dear; I'll stay here.”
“My dear Beverly, I can afford the trip,” he laughed. “I am not an
absolute pauper. Besides, it is right and just that your father should
give you to me. It is the custom of our land.” She was nervous and
“But—but, Paul, there are many things to think of,” she faltered.
“You mean that your father would not consent?”
“Well,—he—he might be unreasonable,” she stammered. “And then
there are my brothers, Keith and Dan. They are foolishly interested in
me. Dan thinks no one is good enough for me. So does Keith. And father,
too, for that matter,—and mother. You see, it's not just as if you
were a grand and wealthy nobleman. They may not understand. We are
southerners, you know. Some of them have peculiar ideas about—”
“Don't distress yourself so much, dearest,” he said with a laugh.
“Though I see your position clearly—and it is not an enviable one.”
“We can go to Washington just as soon as we are married,” she
compromised. “Father has a great deal of influence over there. With his
help behind you you will soon be a power in the United—” but his
hearty laugh checked her eager plotting. “It's nothing to laugh at,
Paul,” she said.
“I beg your pardon a thousand times. I was thinking of the
disappointment I must give you now. I cannot live in the United
States—never. My home is here. I am not born for the strife of your
land. They have soldiers enough and better than I. It is in the
turbulent east that we shall live—you and I.” Tears came into her
“Am I not to—to go back to Washin'ton?” She tried to smile.
“When Prince Dantan says we may, perhaps.”
“Oh, he is my friend,” she cried in great relief. “I can get any
favor I ask of him. Oh, Paul, Paul, I know that my folks will think I'm
an awful fool, but I can't help it. I shall let you know that I intend
to be a blissful one, at least.”
He kissed her time and again, out there in the dark, soft light of
the fairy grotto.
“Before we can be married, dearest, I have a journey of some
importance to take,” he announced, as they arose to leave the bower
“A journey? Where?”
“To Vienna. I have an account to settle with a man who has just
taken up his residence there.” His hand went to his sword-hilt and his
dark eyes gleamed with the fire she loved. “Count Marlanx and I have
postponed business to attend to, dearest. Have no fear for me. My sword
is honest and I shall bring it back to you myself.”
She shuddered and knew that it would be as he said.
CHAPTER XXXI. CLEAR SKIES
The Duke of Matz and his associates reached Edelweiss in the
afternoon. Their attendants and servants carried luggage bearing the
princely crest of Dawsbergen, and meant for Prince Dantan and his
sister Candace. In the part of the castle set apart for the visitors an
important consultation was held behind closed doors. There Dantan met
his countrymen and permitted them to renew the pledge of fealty that
had been shattered by the overpowering influence of his mad
half-brother. What took place at this secret meeting the outside world
never knew. Only the happy result was made known. Prince Dantan was to
resume his reign over Dawsbergen, as if it never had been interrupted.
The castle, brilliant from bottom to top, filled with music and
laughter, experienced a riot of happiness such as it had not known in
years. The war clouds had lifted, the sunshine of contentment was
breaking through the darkness, and there was rejoicing in the hearts of
all. Bright and glorious were the colors that made up the harmony of
peace. Men and women of high degree came to the historic old walls,
garbed in the riches of royalty and nobility. To Beverly Calhoun it was
the most enchanting sight she had ever looked upon. From the galleries
she gazed down into the halls glittering with the wealth of Graustark
and was conscious of a strange feeling of glorification. She felt that
she had a part in this jubilee. With Candace she descended the grand
staircase and mingled with the resplendent crowd.
She was the center of attraction. Dressed in a simple, close-fitting
gown of black velvet, without an ornament, her white arms and shoulders
gleaming in the soft light from the chandeliers, she was an enticing
creature to be admired by men and women alike. Two stalwart Americans
felt their hearts bound with pride as they saw the conquest their
countrywoman was making. Candace, her constant companion in these days,
was consumed with delight.
“You are the prettiest thing in all this world,” she ecstatically
whispered into Beverly's ear. “My brother says so, too,” she added
conclusively. Beverly was too true a woman not to revel in this subtle
The great banquet hall was to be thrown open at midnight. There was
dancing and song during the hours leading up to this important event.
Beverly was entranced. She had seen brilliant affairs at home, but none
of them compared to this in regal splendor. It was the sensuous,
overpowering splendor of the east.
Prince Dantan joined the throng just before midnight. He made his
way direct to the little circle of which Beverly and Candace formed the
center. His rich, full military costume gave him a new distinction that
quite overcame Beverly. They fell into an animated conversation,
exchanging shafts of wit that greatly amused those who could understand
“You must remember,” Beverly said in reply to one of Ravone's
sallies, “that Americans are not in the least awed by Europe's
greatness. It has come to the pass when we call Europe our playground.
We now go to Europe as we go to the circus or the county fair at home.
It isn't much more trouble, you know, and we must see the sights.”
“Alas, poor Europe!” he laughed. As he strolled about with her and
Candace he pointed out certain men to her, asking her to tax her memory
in the effort to recall their faces if not their apparel. She readily
recognized in the lean, tired faces the men she had met first at the
Inn of the Hawk and Raven.
“They were vagabonds then, Miss Calhoun. Now they are noblemen. Does
the transition startle you?”
“Isn't Baldos among them?” she asked, voicing the query that had
been uppermost in her mind since the moment when she looked down from
the galleries and failed to see him. She was wondering how he would
appear in court costume.
“You forget that Baldos is only a guard,” he said kindly.
“He is a courtier, nevertheless,” she retorted.
She was vaguely disappointed because he was missing from the scene
of splendor. It proved to her that caste overcame all else In the
rock-ribbed east. The common man, no matter how valiant, had no place
in such affairs as these. Her pride was suffering. She was as a queen
among the noblest of the realm. As the wife of Baldos she would live in
another world—on the outskirts of this one of splendor and arrogance.
A stubborn, defiant little frown appeared on her brow as she pictured
herself in her mind's eye standing afar off with “the man” Baldos,
looking at the opulence she could not reach. Her impetuous, rebellious
little heart was thumping bitterly as she considered this single phase
of the life to come. She was ready to cry out against the injustice of
it all. The little frown was portentous of deep-laid designs. She would
break down this cruel barrier that kept Baldos from the fields over
which prejudice alone held sway. Her love for him and her determination
to be his wife were not in the least dulled by these reflections.
The doors to the great banquet-hall were thrown open at last and in
the disorder that followed she wondered who was to lead her to the
feasting. The Duke of Mizrox claimed the Princess Candace.
“I am to have the honor,” said someone at her side, and the voice
was the one she least expected to hear utter the words. The speaker was
the man who deserved the place beside Yetive—Prince Dantan himself.
Bewildered, her heart palpitating with various emotions, she took
his arm and allowed herself to be drawn wonderingly through the massive
doors. As they entered, followed by the brilliant company, the superb
orchestra that Beverly had so often enjoyed, began to play the stirring
“Hands Across the Sea.” The musicians themselves seemed to have caught
the universal feeling of joy and mirth that was in the air, and played
as if inspired, their leader bowing low to the young American girl as
she passed. It was his affectionate tribute to her. Prince Dantan, to
her amazement, led her up the entire length of the banquet hall, to the
head of the royal table, gorgeous with the plate of a hundred Graustark
rulers, placing her on his left and next to the slightly raised royal
chairs. Candace was on his right, the picture of happiness. Beverly
felt dizzy, weak. She looked helplessly at Prince Dantan. His smile was
puzzling. As if in a daze, she saw Grenfall Lorry with the Countess
Yvonne standing exactly opposite to her, he with the others, awaiting
the appearance of the princess and the one who was to sit beside her.
The music ceased, there was a hush over the room, and then Yetive
came forward, magnificent in her royal robes, smiling and happy. A tall
man in the uniform of an exalted army officer stood beside her, gold
braid and bejeweled things across his breast. Beverly turned deathly
white, her figure stiffened and then relaxed.
It was Baldos!
She never knew how she dropped into the chair the servant held for
her. She only knew that his dark eyes were smiling at her with love and
mischief in their depths. There was a vague, uncertain sound of
chattering; someone was talking eagerly to her, but she heard him not;
there was a standing toast to the Prince of Dawsbergen; then the
audacious ghost of Baldos was proposing a ringing response to the
Princess Yetive; the orchestra was playing the Graustark and Dawsbergen
national hymns. But it was all as a dream to her. At last she heard
Candace calling to her, her face wreathed in smiles. Scores of eyes
seemed to be looking at her and all of them were full of amusement.
“Now, say that a girl can't keep a secret,” came to her ears from
the radiant sister of Dantan. Ravone, at her side, spoke to her, and
she turned to him dizzily.
“You first knew me as Ravone, Miss Calhoun,” he was saying genially.
“Then it became necessary, by royal command, for me to be Prince
Dantan. May I have the honor of introducing myself in the proper
person? I am Christobal of Rapp-Thorburg, and I shall be no other than
he hereafter. The friendship that binds me to Prince Dantan, at last in
his proper place beside the Princess of Graustark, is to be
strengthened into a dearer relationship before many days have passed.”
“The Princess Candace ceases to be his sister,” volunteered the Duke
of Mizrox. “She is and long has been his affianced wife.”
Enchanted and confused over all that had occurred in the last few
moments, Beverly murmured her heartfelt congratulations to the joyous
couple. The orchestra had again ceased playing. All eyes turned to
Baldos,—the real Prince Dantan,—who, glass in hand, rose to his feet.
“Your Royal Highness, Ladies and Gentlemen: Graustark and Dawsbergen
are entering a new era. I pledge you my honor that never again shall
the slightest misunderstanding exist between them. They shall go forth
to their glorious destiny as one people. Your gracious ruler has seen
fit to bestow her hand and affections upon an American gentleman, your
esteemed prince consort. We all know how loyally the people have
approved her choice. There is one present, a trusted friend of your
beautiful princess, and lovingly called in your hearts, Beverly of
Graustark. Whose example more worthy for me to follow than that of the
Princess Yetive? With whom could I better share my throne and please
you more than with your beloved American protege. I ask you to drink a
toast to my betrothed, Beverly Calhoun, the future Princess of
Every glass was raised and the toast drunk amidst ringing cheers.
The military band crashed out the air so dear to all Americans,
especially to southern hearts. Beverly was too overcome to speak.
“You all—!” she exclaimed.
There was a tremendous commotion in the gallery. People were
standing in their seats half frightened and amused, their attention
attracted by the unusual scene. A portly negress totally unconscious of
the sensation she was causing, her feet keeping time to the lively
strains of music, was frantically waving a red and yellow bandanna
handkerchief. It was Aunt Fanny, and in a voice that could be heard all
over the banquet hall, she shouted: “Good Lawd, honey, ef der ain't
playin' 'Away Down South in Dixie,' Hooray! Hooray!”
* * * * *
Hours later Beverly was running, confused and humbled, through the
halls to her room, when a swifter one than she came up and checked her
“Beverly,” cried an eager voice. She slackened her pace and glanced
over her shoulder. The smiling, triumphant face of Baldos met her gaze.
The upper hall was almost clear of people. She was strangely
frightened, distressingly diffident. Her door was not far away, and she
would have reached it in an instant later had he not laid a
restraining, compelling hand upon her arm. Then she turned to face him,
her lips parted in protest. “Don't look at me in that way,” he cried
imploringly. “Come, dearest, come with me. We can be alone in the nook
at the end of the hall. Heavens, I am the happiest being in all the
world. It has turned out as I have prayed it should.”
She allowed him to lead her to the darkened nook. In her soul she
was wondering why her tongue was so powerless. There were a hundred
things she wanted to say to him, but now that the moment had come she
was voiceless. She only could look helplessly at him. Joy seemed to be
paralyzed within her; it was as if she slept and could not be awakened.
As she sank upon the cushion he dropped to his knee before her, his
hand clasping hers with a fervor that thrilled her with life. As he
spoke, her pulses quickened and the blood began to race furiously.
“I have won your love, Beverly, by the fairest means. There has
never been an hour in which I have not been struggling for this
glorious end. You gave yourself to me when you knew I could be nothing
more than the humblest soldier. It was the sacrifice of love. You will
forgive my presumption—my very insolence, dear one, when I tell you
that my soul is the forfeit I pay. It is yours through all eternity. I
love you. I can give you the riches of the world as well as the wealth
of the heart. The vagabond dies; your poor humble follower gives way to
the supplicating prince. You would have lived in a cot as the
guardsman's wife; you will take the royal palace instead?”
Beverly was herself again. The spell was gone. Her eyes swam with
happiness and love; the suffering her pride had sustained was swept
into a heap labeled romance, and she was rejoicing.
“I hated you to-night, I thought,” she cried, taking his face in her
hands. “It looked as though you had played a trick on me. It was mean,
dear. I couldn't help thinking that you had used me as a plaything and
it—it made me furious. But it is different now. I see, oh, so plainly.
And just as I had resigned myself to the thought of spending the rest
of my life in a cottage, away outside the pale of this glorious life!
Oh, it is like a fairy tale!”
“Ah, but it was not altogether a trick, dear one. There was no
assurance that I could regain the throne—not until the very last.
Without it I should have been the beggar instead of the prince. We
would have lived in a hovel, after all. Fortune was with me, I deceived
you for months, Beverly—my Beverly, but it was for the best. In
defense of my honor and dignity, however, I must tell you that the
princess has known for many days that I am Dantan. I told her the truth
when Christobal came that day with the news. It was all well enough for
me to pass myself off as a vagabond, but it would have been
unpardonable to foist him upon her as the prince.”
“And she has known for a week?” cried Beverly in deep chagrin.
“And the whole court has known.”
“I alone was blind?”
“As blind as the proverb. Thank God, I won your love as a vagabond.
I can treasure it as the richest of my princely possessions. You have
not said that you will go to my castle with me, dear.”
She leaned forward unsteadily and he took her in his eager arms.
Their lips met and their eyes closed in the ecstasy of bliss. After a
long time she lifted her lids and her eyes of gray looked solemnly into
his dark ones.
“I have much to ask you about, many explanations to demand, sir,”
she said threateningly.
“By the rose that shields my heart, you shall have the truth,” he
laughed back at her.” I am still your servant. My enlistment is
endless. I shall always serve your highness.”
“Your highness!” she murmured reflectively. Then a joyous smile of
realization broke over her face. “Isn't it wonderful?”
“Do you think your brothers will let me come to Washington, now?” he
“It does seem different, doesn't it?” she murmured, with a strange
little smile, “You will come for me?”
“To the ends of the earth, your highness.”